Selected quad for the lemma: body_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
body_n blood_n break_v shed_v 10,145 5 9.7147 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A06764 An anatomi, that is to say a parting in peeces of the mass Which discouereth the horrible errors, and the infinit abuses vnknowen to the people, aswel of the mass as of the mass book, very profitable, yea most necessary for al Christian people. VVith a sermon of the sacrament of thankesgyuyng in the end, whiche declareth whether Christ be bodyly in the sacrament or not. By Chrystes humble seruant Anthoni de Adamo.; Annotomia della messa. English Mainardi, Agostino, 1487-1563. 1556 (1556) STC 17200; ESTC S111869 206,001 464

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

any_o turn_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n do_v suffice_v to_o bring_v to_o remembrans_fw-la his_o passion_n and_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n give_v for_o our_o ransom_n as_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v to_o rememberan_n the_o pass_v over_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pass_v by_o of_o the_o angel_n in_o egypt_n yea_o it_o be_v not_o only_o not_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v there_o but_o if_o he_o be_v there_o he_o shall_v be_v there_o in_o vain_a because_o he_o shall_v be_v there_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o shall_v help_v nothing_o to_o rememberan_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v see_v and_o it_o be_v behooveful_a that_o the_o sign_n that_o bring_v a_o thing_n to_o rememberan_n as_o the_o sacrament_n do_v shall_v be_v seeable_a and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o what_o end_n the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o we_o be_v body_a as_o the_o old_a doctor_n say_v and_o among_o the_o rest_n chrysostom_n upon_o matthew_v the._n 83._o omelye_o the_o which_o say_v that_o therefore_o they_o be_v institute_v that_o by_o they_o as_o by_o certain_a seeable_a sign_n our_o mind_n shall_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o unseeable_a thing_n signify_v by_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o saint_n augustne_v call_v the_o sacrament_n seeable_a word_n so_o that_o if_o we_o be_v unbodied_a it_o need_v not_o to_o institute_v they_o the_o reason_n stand_v in_o this_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v in_o remembrans_fw-la of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n give_v for_o us._n that_o which_o seruith_n for_o remembrance_n as_o a_o owtward_a sign_n aught_o to_o be_v seeable_a christ_n body_n and_o blood_n if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v unseeable_a therefore_o they_o shall_v nothing_o serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n if_o they_o shall_v no_o way_n serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n than_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a nor_o convenient_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v bodily_a present_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o seeable_a sign_n shall_v be_v there_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n which_o may_v work_v that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o may_v bring_v to_o remembrance_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o which_o thing_n christ_n bodily_a presen_n in_o the_o sacrament_n can_v not_o do_v i_o confirm_v this_o reason_n thus_o if_o christ_n be_v there_o bodily_a present_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o thanksgeve_a and_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v in_o to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o must_v say_v that_o either_o this_o be_v by_o a_o come_fw-mi and_o general_a right_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o which_o shall_v belong_v not_o only_o to_o this_o but_o also_o to_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n orel_n by_o a_o particular_a and_o special_a right_n of_o this_o sacrament_n only_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o and_o not_o the_o rest_n shall_v have_v this_o prerogative_n of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v by_o one_o of_o thes_n ij_o right_n or_o else_o by_o they_o both_o but_o first_o we_o can_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v by_o a_o common_a and_o general_a right_n of_o a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o if_o a_o thing_n be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a that_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o same_o sacrament_n shall_v there_o be_v present_a and_o much_o less_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v any_o turn_n of_o the_o substance_n this_o can_v not_o be_v say_v because_o that_o their_o thing_n signify_v aught_o than_o to_o be_v there_o present_a in_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n but_o we_o do_v see_v the_o contrary_a for_o somoch_v as_o that_o in_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n remain_v as_o at_o the_o first_o and_o be_v not_o change_v and_o there_o be_v never_o any_o man_n that_o will_v say_v any_o such_o thing_n if_o they_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o old_a sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o hebrew_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o of_o the_o circumcision_n of_o paschal_n lamb_n of_o the_o rock_n out_o of_o which_o issew_v the_o water_n in_o the_o desert_n and_o of_o the_o manna_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v sacrament_n to_o that_o people_n because_o they_o be_v to_o they_o sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n no_o one_o of_o thes_n do_v ever_o change_v the_o substance_n for_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n the_o flesh_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n remain_v flesh_n as_o before_o and_o we_o will_v sai_fw-mi the_o same_o of_o the_o rock_n and_o of_o the_o manna_n that_o there_o be_v no_o manner_n change_v of_o substancc_fw-la the_o new_a sacrament_n also_o of_o the_o christian_a people_n they_o also_o do_v not_o change_v substance_n the_o water_n of_o baptism_n remain_v water_n as_o before_o the_o other_o likewise_o which_o be_v by_o the_o school_n man_n and_o new_a doctor_n cownt_v for_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v cream_n oil_n which_o they_o call_v holy_a penan_n order_n and_o matrimony_n the_o which_o in_o deed_n be_v no_o sacrament_n because_o they_o be_v not_o institute_v by_o christ_n for_o sacrament_n they_o do_v not_o change_v their_o substance_n but_o remain_v in_o their_o first_o substance_n and_o there_o be_v make_v no_o manner_n of_o change_n this_o be_v clear_a so_o that_o there_o need_v not_o by_o common_a and_o general_a right_n of_o sacrament_n to_o put_v christ_n body_a presen_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o much_o less_o to_o affirm_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o substantial_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n nor_o we_o ought_v not_o neither_o to_o say_v that_o by_o particular_a and_o special_a right_n of_o this_o sacrament_n christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a present_n nor_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v such_o manner_n of_o change_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o the_o particular_a right_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v chief_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o sign_n sunder_v from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v bread_n and_o wine_n in_o substance_n which_o be_v thing_n diverse_a from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n and_o further_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o particular_a and_o diverse_a signification_n from_o the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v institute_v to_o bring_v particular_o to_o our_o rememberan_n christ_n passion_n and_o death_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v represent_v unto_o we_o how_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o our_o ransome_v this_o be_v the_o particular_a and_o special_a right_n of_o this_o sacrament_n by_o the_o which_o it_o be_v sondri_fw-la and_o diverse_a from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a by_o this_o right_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v in_o their_o substance_n as_o they_o be_v first_o and_o may_v withowt_n that_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n work_v thes_n effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bring_v to_o our_o rememberan_n and_o represent_v unto_o we_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n and_o how_o he_o have_v give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o our_o ransome_v it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o work_n of_o this_o rememberan_n that_o they_o have_v a_o new_a signification_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o change_v the_o substance_n as_o in_o the_o first_o reason_n we_o have_v say_v yea_o i_o say_v that_o see_v the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v true_a sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n their_o substance_n must_v needs_o remain_v as_o it_o be_v first_o for_o otherwise_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v agreement_n and_o likely_v with_o their_o thing_n signify_v nor_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v true_a sign_n as_o for_o example_n baptism_n have_v lykelihode_n with_o the_o spiritual_a wash_a because_o it_o be_v water_n and_o as_o the_o water_n wassh_v and_o cleanse_v the_o body_n so_o be_v those_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n spiritual_o cleanse_v and_o wassh_v from_o their_o sin_n but_o if_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n shall_v not_o remain_v water_n but_o shall_v change_v the_o substance_n it_o shall_v not_o have_v such_o agreement_n so_o we_o will_v say_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n that_o therefore_o they_o have_v likely_v with_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o abide_v still_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o even_o as_o
turnekindinge_a if_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n because_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o bluode_n show_v the_o wine_n and_o that_o else_o christ_n word_n shall_v not_o have_v benetrue_a if_o the_o bread_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o bluode_n or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o christ_n body_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o his_o bluode_n in_o the_o wine_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n which_o christ_n do_v eat_v with_o his_o disciple_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o passover_o because_o christ_n say_v the_o lamb_n be_v the_o passover_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o luke_o i_o have_v earnest_o desire_v to_o eat_v this_o passover_n with_o you_o before_o i_o suffer_v 22._o luk._n 22._o if_o be_v clear_a that_o by_o this_o word_n passover_n christ_n do_v mean_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o because_o that_o pascha_fw-la be_v that_o go_v over_o and_o pass_v by_o that_o the_o angel_n make_v when_o he_o pass_v over_o the_o hebrew_n not_o enter_v in_o but_o only_o enter_v into_o the_o egyptian_n house_n kill_v their_o first_o bear_v as_o we_o have_v in_o exodus_fw-la 12._o exod._n 12._o we_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o say_v that_o that_o lamb_n be_v turn_v into_o that_o same_o go_v over_o or_o pass_v by_o or_o else_o that_o that_o go_v over_o or_o pass_v by_o be_v in_o that_o lamb_n according_a to_o there_o opinion_n that_o will_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remaininge_v and_o because_o that_o that_o go_v over_o be_v not_o then_o when_o christ_n say_v those_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o that_o lamb_n be_v the_o pascha_fw-la or_o passover_v but_o it_o be_v only_o in_o moses_n time_n in_o egypt_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o do_v eat_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o behold_v what_o manner_n thing_n do_v follow_v their_o opinion_n that_o will_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a in_o that_o host_n and_o that_o cup_n because_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o bluode_n show_v the_o wine_n for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v no_o less_o true_a that_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o pascha_fw-la or_o passover_v than_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n be_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o christ_n who_o can_v lie_v have_v speak_v the_o one_o and_o other_o and_o god_n himself_o say_v the_o lamb_n be_v the_o passover_n it_o be_v therefore_o of_o necessity_n that_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o passover_n or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o that_o passover_n shall_v be_v in_o that_o lamb_n because_o god_n say_v so_o if_o we_o will_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o power_n to_o make_v the_o turn_v of_o the_o one_o and_o other_a into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o he_o have_v not_o gewen_v the_o pover_fw-mi to_o other_o word_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o turn_v it_o into_o the_o passover_n orel_n that_o the_o passover_n shall_v be_v the_o lamb_n 12._o exod._n 12._o this_o sa_v must_v needs_o be_v self_n will_v and_o without_o reason_n because_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o be_v make_v for_o remembrance_n the_o lamb_n be_v ordain_v in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o passover_n of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v in_o egypt_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n give_v for_o our_o raunsominge_v furthermore_o they_o must_v show_v how_o christ_n have_v give_v such_o power_n to_o those_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n that_o by_o utteringe_v they_o such_o turn_n shall_v be_v make_v orel_n that_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v make_v present_a they_o shall_v neaver_o be_v able_a to_o show_v this_o their self_o wild_a talk_n to_o be_v true_a nether_a by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v behoove_v full_a they_o shall_v do_v intend_v to_o affirm_v such_o a_o matter_n and_o much_o less_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o reason_n available_a further_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n have_v give_fw-ge such_fw-mi power_n to_o the_o word_n yet_o he_o give_v it_o not_o but_o to_o those_o word_n that_o he_o they_o say_v when_o he_o do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o other_o and_o this_o they_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n do_v confess_v but_o the_o word_n that_o christ_n speak_v they_o be_v no_o more_o true_a because_o he_o speak_v they_o of_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o not_o of_o the_o time_n past_a that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o bodi_fw-la the_o which_o shall_v be_v give_fw-ge for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o these_o word_n be_v they_o true_a because_o that_o his_o body_n be_v not_o yet_o give_fw-ge nor_o his_o blood_n shed_v but_o they_o be_v to_o be_v give_fw-ge but_o now_o they_o be_v no_o more_o true_a but_o false_a because_o that_o even_o as_o christ_n now_o can_v no_o more_o die_v nor_o suffer_v so_o can_v he_o no_o more_o geve_v his_o body_n nor_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o so_o much_o as_o if_o he_o can_v do_v these_o thing_n he_o shall_v be_v sufferable_a and_o mortal_a and_o this_o can_v be_v therefore_o if_o these_o word_n have_v power_n to_o work_v those_o effect_n they_o false_a word_n shall_v have_v have_v pover_fw-mi to_o turn_v the_o substance_n orel_n to_o make_v christ_n present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o if_o they_o be_v true_a they_o have_v they_o power_n to_o make_v christ_n sufferable_a and_o mortal_a i_o confirm_v this_o reason_n thus_o if_o because_o christ_n say_v those_o wosd_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n such_o turn_n shall_v be_v make_v or_o else_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o will_v follow_v inconvenience_n because_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o god_n in_o the_o which_o be_v affirm_v that_o a_o thing_n be_v other_o this_o or_o that_o see_v that_o god_n can_v not_o tell_v a_o untruth_n we_o shall_v be_v compel_v i_o say_v to_o affirm_v and_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v so_o as_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o say_v and_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o grant_n that_o the_o testament_n or_o god_n covenaunt_v whither_o you_o will_v call_v it_o shall_v be_v there_o in_o the_o same_o circumcision_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o god_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o genesis_n say_v to_o abram_n when_o he_o do_v institute_v the_o circumcision_n 17._o gene._n 17._o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o circumcision_n and_o for_o all_o that_o the_o circumcision_n be_v not_o that_o covenaunt_n but_o only_o a_o sign_n of_o that_o covenaunt_n as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o same_o chapter_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o god_n call_v the_o circumcision_n the_o sign_n of_o his_o covenaunt_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n and_o yet_o god_n say_v that_o the_o circumcision_n be_v the_o covenaunt_n we_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o grant_v that_o that_o fearful_a fantasy_n the_o which_o appear_v to_o saul_n 28._o 1_o regum_fw-la 28._o as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o king_n be_v samuel_n in_o deed_n because_o the_o scripture_n there_o dothcal_fw-mi it_o samuel_n and_o yet_o all_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n say_v and_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fantasy_n and_o a_o deceit_n of_o the_o devel_n and_o not_o samuel_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v compel_v also_o to_o say_v that_o because_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o vine_n that_o he_o be_v so_o in_o deed_n and_o because_o the_o scripture_n call_v christ_n a_o rock_n a_o lion_n a_o lamb_n a_o sheep_n and_o as_o many_o other_o thing_n as_o it_o speak_v of_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n in_o deed_n be_v all_o those_o thing_n but_o what_o will_v they_o say_v to_o christ_n own_o word_n in_o the_o same_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n do_v not_o only_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o he_o say_v take_v the_o cup_n 11._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o as_o luke_o and_o paul_n do_v affirm_v this_o cup_n be_v my_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o bluode_n these_o word_n be_v aswell_o true_a as_o those_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o christ_n do_v aswell_o sai_fw-mi
with_o hand_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v see_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v feel_v may_v also_o be_v see_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thorough_a shower_n as_o the_o air_n be_v but_o who_o do_v eaver_n see_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n tother_o fault_n of_o thesame_a gloze_n be_v that_o it_o speak_v against_o the_o text_n for_o the_o text_n of_o beringarius_fw-la confession_n say_v express_o that_o not_o only_o the_o sacrament_n but_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v sensible_o handle_v with_o the_o priest_n hand_n be_v break_v and_o knaw_v to_o morsel_n with_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a these_o word_n can_v have_v that_o sense_n that_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n geve_v they_o because_o that_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n be_v plain_o speak_v of_o and_o he_o say_v in_o the_o text_n that_o they_o be_v break_v and_o gnaw_v into_o morsel_n with_o the_o faythful_n tooth_n further_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o who_o be_v present_a at_o that_o confession_n do_v understand_v the_o word_n otherwise_o they_o according_a to_o the_o open_a and_o letter_a signification_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o in_o confession_n man_n must_v chefelye_o speak_v plain_o and_o not_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o gyve_v they_o gloss_n and_o exposition_n but_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v open_a and_o many_o fast_o and_o far_o from_o any_o doubt_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o they_o that_o compel_v he_o to_o make_v that_o confession_n do_v wirt_z it_z themselves_o as_o it_o like_v they_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o certain_a man_n call_v humbertus_fw-la cardinal_n of_o burgony_n word_v or_o if_o you_o will_v so_o call_v it_o frame_v that_o confession_n o_o capernites_n this_o be_v the_o honour_n that_o they_o do_v to_o christ_n to_o constrain_v a_o poor_a man_n to_o confess_v that_o christ_n who_o be_v immortal_a and_o unsufferable_a shall_v be_v sensible_o handle_v and_o break_v with_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o chaw_a and_o gnave_v into_o morsel_n with_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v these_o the_o counsel_n gather_v together_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n for_o all_o that_o and_o as_o many_o other_o glosers_n a●…_n be_v in_o the_o world_n gloze_n at_o their_o pleasure_n yet_o they_o shall_v never_o set_v the_o matter_n well_o together_o this_o thing_n be_v to_o doltish_a yea_o it_o be_v a_o scorn_v both_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o what_o the_o cause_n shall_v be_v that_o have_v move_v the_o devyser_n of_o these_o opinyon_n of_o christ_n bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o turn_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n to_o imagine_v such_o thing_n i_o say_v in_o my_o judgsment_n that_o they_o be_v chief_o two_o the_o first_o be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o they_o be_v not_o exercyse_v in_o the_o same_o and_o they_o do_v imagen_fw-mi when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n that_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o speech_n can_v not_o be_v true_a except_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n be_v substantial_o and_o be_o the_o very_a body_n and_o the_o very_a blood_n of_o christ_n or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o the_o one_o and_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v with_o in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o see_v that_o the_o word_n be_v clear_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n also_o that_o the_o old_a doctor_n many_o time_n do_v affirm_v and_o call_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n body_n and_o blood_n they_o think_v that_o that_o be_v the_o mind_n as_o well_o of_o the_o same_o doctor_n as_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o thing_n notwithstanding_o be_v never_o so_o and_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o the_o same_o scripture_n when_o it_o treat_v of_o sacrament_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v after_o that_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v as_o already_o we_o have_v beforcerten_a time_n tell_v and_o that_o the_o doctor_n likwyse_o follow_v the_o same_o manner_n of_o speech_n this_o i_o think_v be_v one_o cause_n why_o they_o do_v so_o utter_v it_o and_o to_o prove_v this_o true_a when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v their_o purpose_n they_o allege_v the_o saing_n of_o the_o doctor_n evel_a understand_v and_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n as_o though_o he_o have_v mean_v to_o sai_fw-mi that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o consider_v that_o christ_n speak_v as_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v when_o it_o call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o therefore_o they_o have_v affirm_v those_o their_o opinion_n to_o be_v thing_n ꝑtain_v to_o faith_n the_o which_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v bund_a to_o believe_v as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o foresay_a lanfranck_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o he_o write_v against_o beringarius_n say_v we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o earthly_a substance_n the_o which_o upon_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v by_o the_o priestly_a ministry_n devinelie_o hallow_v by_o the_o heavenly_a power_n be_v unspeakable_o unconceivable_o and_o marvellous_o turn_v in_o the_o very_fw-la essen_v or_o beingnes_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n the_o form_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o certain_a other_o qualy●…ies_n be_v reserve_v and_o he_o say_v also_o that_o the_o just_a man_n who_o lyve_v by_o faith_n do_v not_o labour_n to_o serchout_n with_o argument_n and_o to_o understand_v with_o reason_n after_o what_o sort_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v turn_v in_o to_o blood_n be_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v change_v because_o he_o will_v rather_o gyve_v faith_n to_o the_o heavenly_a my_o sterye_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o hereafter_o he_o may_v come_v to_o the_o reward_n of_o faith_n then_o leave_v the_o faith_n to_o be_v toil_v in_o vain_a in_o conprehend_v those_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v comprehend_v etc._n etc._n thomas_n of_o aquyne_n in_o his_o hymn_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n say_v the_o like_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n flesh_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n make_v man_n with_o the_o word_n do_v make_v bread_n flesh_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v make_v christ_n blood_n and_o though_o the_o sense_n do_v fail_v to_o establish_v a_o pure_a hart_n yet_o faith_n only_o be_v sufficient_a and_o next_o after_o he_o say_v let_v he_o put_v to_o faith_n as_o a_o help_n for_o the_o fail_a of_o the_o sense_n these_o two_o man_n will_v that_o opinion_n shall_v be_v beleve_v as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o if_o they_o have_v beleve_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o as_o their_o word_n do_v affirm_v sure_o they_o have_v slight_o and_o evel_n favordly_a beleve_v because_o that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v beleve_v as_o a_o artycle_n of_o the_o faith_n except_o it_o be_v find_v express_o in_o the_o scripture_n let_v they_o tell_v i_o then_o where_o be_v the_o scripture_n that_o they_o allege_v where_o be_v god_n word_n on_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o faith_n shall_v we_o believe_v these_o doctor_n that_o make_v thearticle_n of_o the_o faith_n without_o god_n word_n that_o belde_n their_o building_n upon_o the_o sand_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o sure_a rock_n the_o first_o cause_n i_o say_v of_o such_o opynion_n be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o cause_n without_o comparayson_a be_v much_o worse_a than_o this_o and_o paraventure_fw-fr it_o shall_v appear_v to_o some_o that_o i_o be_o of_o a_o evell_a mind_n think_v so_o much_o evel_a as_o i_o do_v of_o the_o auctour_n of_o such_o opinion_n but_o if_o they_o will_v consider_v the_o disceighte_n the_o craft_n and_o the_o number_n of_o abuse_n that_o be_v malytious_o commit_v in_o the_o mass_n they_o will_v sai_fw-mi sure_o that_o i_o be_o yet_o to_o gentle_a that_o i_o think_v not_o much_o worse_a what_o good_a can_v be_v think_v of_o the_o begin_n of_o so_o great_a a_o error_n from_o whence_o do_v proceed_v so_o many_o inconvenience_n and_o disorder_n the_o second_o cause_n i_o say_v that_o i_o imagine_v be_v this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o desire_v to_o gyve_v credit_n to_o the_o private_a mass_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o
in_o the_o last_o supper_n sa_v to_o the_o corynthyans_n hoc_fw-la n_z accepi_fw-la a_o dnon_n ꝙ_n &_o tradidi_fw-la nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 11._o 1._o chorin_n 11._o that_o be_v that_o which_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n deliver_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o pure_a and_o holy_a order_n gevin_n by_o christ_n and_o keep_v with_o so_o great_a reverence_n by_o his_o apostel_n aught_o to_o have_v suffice_v we_o and_o not_o to_o make_v so_o many_o addition_n which_o blemissh_n i_o will_v not_o say_v bewray_v the_o pureness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o have_v do_v of_o baptym_n to_o which_o they_o have_v join_v salt_n oil_n spyttel_n conjure_v which_o thing_n neither_o john_n baptist_n when_o he_o baptise_a christ_n nor_o the_o apostel_n do_v ever_o use_v and_o thes_n which_o with_o reverence_n do_v keep_v christ_n appointment_n and_o with_o humbleness_n do_v obey_v he_o be_v now_o cownt_v for_o heretic_n as_o though_o they_o be_v more_o bind_v to_o obey_v man_n than_o god_n let_v every_o faithful_a christian_n judge_v iff_n we_o say_v the_o treuth_n this_o five_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n geve_v to_o understand_v clere_o that_o by_o thes_n word_n offering_n sacryfice_n and_o gift_n be_v understand_v the_o wine_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v and_o that_o they_o be_v none_o other_o but_o bread_n and_o wine_n ffor_o he_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n the_o bare_a simple_a bread_n and_o the_o bare_a simple_a wine_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o soul_n and_o for_o saluacyon_n as_o in_o the_o ij_o part_n have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v not_o here_o gloze_v that_o the_o canon_n intend_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v turn_v in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o they_o say_v shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o raunsominge_v of_o soul_n for_o it_o mean_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o of_o that_o wine_n which_o be_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n now_o be_v it_o certain_a yea_o affter_o their_o own_o mind_n that_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n which_o be_v yet_o to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v bare_a plain_a bread_n and_o bare_a wine_n and_o yet_o the_o canon_n say_v that_o they_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o raunsominge_v of_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o plain_a wickedness_n the_o syxt_v part_n of_o the_o canon_n say_v the_o which_o that_o be_v to_o say_v chryst_n of_o who_o be_v make_v mention_v in_o the_o former_a part_n the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v consecration_n the_o sixth_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o the_o consecration_n take_v the_o bread_n in_o his_o holy_a and_o honourable_a hand_n here_o the_o priest_n take_v the_o host_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o add_v and_o his_o eye_n be_v lift_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o the_o god_n his_o father_n almyghty_a yield_v to_o the_o thancke_n he_o bless_v and_o here_o be_v make_v a_o cross_n upon_o the_o host_n and_o be_v add_v he_o break_v and_o give_v to_o his_o discyple_n sa_v take_v and_o eat_v all_o of_o this_o ffor_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o here_o the_o host_n be_v lifft_v up_o and_o cause_v to_o be_v honour_v a_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v not_o appoint_v but_o why_o be_v not_o the_o bread_n than_o break_v as_o christ_n do_v see_v he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v this_o in_o his_o remembrance_n and_o not_o to_o cause_v the_o bread_n or_o wine_n to_o be_v honour_v when_o this_o be_v do_v the_o host_n be_v lay_v down_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o cup_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n and_o the_o other_o part_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o part_n be_v say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v likewise_o when_o they_o have_v sup_v take_v this_o noble_a cup_n in_o his_o holy_a and_o honourable_a hand_n mass_n the_o seven_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n render_v thancke_n again_o unto_o the_o he_o bless_v and_o he●…e_o be_v make_v a_o cross_n over_o the_o cup_n and_o add_v and_o ●…ave_v to_o his_o disciple_n sa_v take_v and_o drink_v all_o of_o ●…his_n for_o this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a ●…nd_n everlasting_a testament_n a_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n ●…he_o which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o for_o ●…he_v remission_n of_o sin_n so_o offt_o as_o you_o shall_v do_v thes_n thing_n you_o shall_v do_v they_o in_o my_o remembrance_n and_o sa_v thes_n last_o word_n the_o cup_n be_v lifft_v up_o and_o cause_v to_o be_v honour_v as_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o host_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o to_o gether_o contrary_a to_o christes_fw-fr ordinance_n in_o thes_n ij_o part_n be_v make_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v add_v ij_o word_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o evangeliste_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o word_n enim_fw-la and_o that_o other_o exit_fw-la hoc_fw-la oens_fw-la and_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o wine_n be_v add_v ij_o other_o that_o be_v eterni_fw-la and_o misterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la which_o likewise_o be_v not_o in_o theevamgeliste_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v maruel_v see_v the_o defender_n of_o the_o mass_n say_v that_o with_o christ_n word_n the_o consecration_n be_v make_v and_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o add_v or_o minissh_v they_o and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o as_o they_o themselves_o say_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o power_n of_o consecration_n to_o those_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v not_o to_o any_o other_o how_o dare_v they_o be_v bold_a to_o add_v any_o one_o word_n i_o will_v not_o now_o say_v that_o by_o this_o the_o sentence_n be_v change_v nevertheless_o see_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o use_v any_o other_o word_n than_o those_o same_o that_o christ_n speak_v because_o he_o give_v the_o power_n of_o consecration_n to_o those_o only_a and_o not_o to_o any_o other_o as_o they_o say_v and_o that_o we_o can_v know_v certain_o what_o word_n they_o shall_v be_v but_o by_o the_o evangeliste_n or_o by_o paul_n and_o find_v those_o word_n that_o the_o canon_n do_v add_v neither_o in_o thevangeliste_n nor_o in_o paul_n it_o be_v a_o great_a rasshnes_n to_o add_v they_o here_o the_o rational_a or_o cause_n teller_n of_o divine_a officis_fw-la say_v that_o the_o apostel_n have_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o consecration_n from_o christ_n and_o we_o from_o thapostel_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meruel_v though_o these_o word_n which_o seem_v add_v be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o evangeliste_n and_o yet_o speak_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o evangeliste_n for_o shortness_n have_v pass_v over_o many_o thing_n which_o the_o apostel_n have_v supply_v and_o he_o give_v thexample_n of_o the_o vision_n which_o paul_n declare_v in_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n 15_o 1._o cor._n 15_o that_o christ_n affter_o his_o resurrection_n appear_v to_o moo_v than_o v._o honder_v brother_n of_o which_o vision_n thevangeliste_n make_v no_o mencyon_n at_o all_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a he_o allege_v also_o that_o among_o thevangeliste_n one_n declare_v one_o thing_n and_o a_o neither_o leavith_n out_o the_o same_o etc._n etc._n all_o this_o be_v true_a that_o thevamgeliste_n have_v leffe_a out_o certain_a thing_n which_o be_v do_v and_o allthoughe_o the_o one_o supply_v that_o which_o the_o other_o leave_v out_o this_o make_v not_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangeliste_n chief_o to_o they_o of_o the_o consecration_n to_o which_o word_n only_o christ_n according_a to_o their_o opinion_n have_v give_v power_n to_o change_v the_o bread_n in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o blood_n and_o not_o to_o any_o other_o who_o do_v asserten_a we_o that_o christ_n speak_v this_o word_n enim_fw-la and_o thes_n other_o word_n ad_v that_o be_v to_o say_v exit_fw-la hoc_fw-la oens_fw-la and_o those_o other_o ij_o that_o be_v to_o say_v aeterni_fw-la and_o misterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la we_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o appear_v of_o christ_n to_o moo_o than_o v._o honder_v brother_n because_o paul_n to_o who_o christ_n do_v reveal_v it_o have_v writon_n it_o but_o if_o paul_n have_v not_o writon_n it_o and_o find_v it_o not_o in_o the_o gospel_n how_o can_v it_o be_v certain_o know_v and_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o likewise_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o thing_n lefft_v out_o by_o one_o evangelist_n be_v know_v because_o a_o neither_o do_v tell_v they_o but_o if_o all_o have_v lefft_v they_o out_o how_o can_v we_o certain_o know_v they_o o_o sai_o they_o the_o church_n have_v it_o from_o the_o apostel_n say_v thou_o so_o how_o do_v thou_o know_v it_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v
the_o how_o many_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o the_o apostel_n and_o be_v attributet_fw-la to_o they_o which_o neaver_o be_v we_o may_v than_o affter_o this_o sort_n attribute_n to_o the_o apostel_n what_o we_o will_v paul_n write_v to_o the_o chorynte_n 11._o 1._o corith_n 11._o teach_v they_o the_o form_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v it_o of_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o he_o put_v not_o in_o any_o of_o thes_n word_n and_o yet_o sure_o for_o all_o that_o he_o teach_v to_o consecrate_v well_o why_o than_o do_v he_o not_o put_v in_o thes_n word_n iff_n in_o the_o consecration_n there_o be_v nothing_o consider_v but_o the_o sentemc●…_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n though_o some_o word_n be_v add_v or_o minissh_v so_o that_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o alter_v but_o the_o consideration_n here_o be_v of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v what_o they_o be_v to_o which_o christ_n have_v give_v the_o power_n to_o consecrate_v and_o to_o they_o it_o behove_v not_o to_o add_v or_o to_o minissh_v all_o this_o i_o say_v according_a to_o their_o opinion_n for_o they_o will_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v give_v the_o vertew_n of_o consecrate_v to_o the_o word_n which_o he_o himselff_o speak_v and_o not_o to_o other_o and_o yet_o thes_n word_n that_o i_o say_v be_v add_v be_v neither_o in_o thevangeliste_n nor_o in_o paul_n here_o must_v we_o say_v that_o paul_n teach_v not_o to_o consecrate_v well_o because_o he_o speak_v they_o not_o or_o else_o iff_a paul_n teach_v to_o consecrate_v well_o that_o christ_n speak_v not_o those_o word_n and_o if_o christ_n speak_v they_o not_o they_o have_v use_v a_o great_a rasshnes_n that_o have_v add_v they_o specyal_o have_v that_o opinion_n that_o they_o have_v of_o the_o consecration_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o power_n give_v to_o those_o word_n only_o that_o christ_n pronownce_v moreover_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o put_v in_o thes_n word_n which_o christ_n pronounce_v that_o be_v quod_fw-la ꝓuobis_fw-la datur_fw-la which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o as_o luke_n say_v or_o else_o ꝙ_n pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la tradet_fw-la and_o frangitur_fw-la which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o as_o paul_n say_v as_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o wine_n there_o be_v thes_n word_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o body_n be_v no_o less_o give_v for_o our_o redemption_n than_o the_o blood_n why_o have_v they_o in_o this_o part_n maim_v the_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o not_o those_o of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o wine_n let_v every_o man_n judge_n if_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v but_o this_o be_v the_o best_a of_o the_o matter_n that_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o maintain_v it_o say_v that_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n be_v change_v the_o one_o in_o to_o the_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o other_o in_o to_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v the_o wine_n and_o be_v much_o cumber_v because_o they_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o be_v show_v by_o this_o demonstrative_a hoc_fw-la when_o be_v say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n if_o by_o this_o word_n hoc_fw-la be_v show_v the_o bread_n the_o sa_n be_v false_a because_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o change_v in_o to_o the_o body_n till_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n be_v utter_v iff_n the_o body_n be_v show_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v there_o before_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v and_o before_o the_o consecration_n shall_v be_v make_v and_o we_o have_v the_o like_a to_o say_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o wine_n which_o thing_n be_v declare_v when_o be_v say_v hoc_fw-la en_fw-fr n._n sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la etc._n etc._n iff_n the_o wine_n be_v show_v it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o wine_n shall_v be_v blood_n if_o the_o blood_n be_v show_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o blood_n shall_v be_v there_o before_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v which_o thing_n can_v be_v and_o therefore_o some_o say_v affter_o one_o sort_n and_o some_o affter_o a_o neither_o and_o to_o be_v short_a they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o may_v say_v one_o say_v that_o this_o hoc_fw-la do_v show_n partly_o to_o the_o sense_n and_o partly_o to_o the_o understond_n and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o thes_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o into_o which_o this_o thing_n shall_v be_v transsubstantiate_a be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o richard_n of_o s._n victor_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n certain_a other_o say_v that_o the_o with_o come_v of_o the_o bread_n be_v show_v and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o in_o this_o be_v my_o body_n some_o other_o say_v that_o this_o pronown_n hoc_fw-la be_v take_v material_o and_o do_v not_o show_v any_o thing_n when_o it_o be_v pronownce_v in_o the_o consecration_n but_o christes_fw-fr word_n only_o be_v repeat_v to_o other_o the_o contrary_n appear_v ffor_o when_o christ_n pronownce_v those_o word_n he_o shw_v some_o thing_n and_o do_v consecrate_v therefore_o now_o also_o be_v the_o same_o word_n and_o have_v the_o selff_n same_o use_n that_o they_o have_v when_o christ_n speak_v they_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o selff_n same_o signification_n and_o even_o as_o christ_n than_o show_v some_o thing_n so_o now_o must_v some_o thing_n be_v show_v innocentius_n the_o iij._o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o mass_n do_v hold_v that_o christ_n consecrate_v with_o other_o word_n than_o thes_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o hic_fw-la en_fw-fr calix_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la mei_fw-la some_o other_o have_v say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v be_v give_v to_o thes_n word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o at_o the_o utter_n of_o they_o be_v make_v he_o transsubstanciation_n some_o other_o say_v and_o among_o he_o rest_v master_n durant_n that_o christ_n first_o do_v consecrate_v with_o a_o divine_a power_n not_o know_v to_o we_o and_o affter_o he_o declare_v the_o fasshion_n with_o which_o affter_o he_o man_n shall_v consecrate_v for_o christ_n bless_v with_o his_o own_o power_n but_o we_o do_v bless_v by_o the_o virtue_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o word_n with_o which_o man_n consecrate_v that_o be_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la and_o when_o the_o priest_n pronownce_v thes_n word_n the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o blood_n there_o be_v other_o that_o say_v that_o christ_n consecrate_v with_o other_o word_n than_o thes_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o that_o he_o consecrate_v when_o he_o bless_v peter_n commestor_n say_v that_o christ_n consecrate_v with_o thes_n word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la but_o he_o speak_v they_o sofft_o to_o himself_o and_o change_v the_o bread_n in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o blood_n and_o affter_o he_o repeat_v they_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o the_o apostel_n other_o some_o say_v that_o christ_n pronownce_v the_o word_n twice_o first_o to_o geve_v they_o the_o virtue_n of_o consecrate_v and_o affter_o he_o pronownce_v the_o same_o word_n to_o teach_v the_o apostel_n the_o fasshon_n of_o consecrate_v and_o this_o opinion_n be_v little_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a some_o other_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v both_o consecrate_v together_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o the_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v than_o be_v the_o bread_n consecrate_v and_o not_o before_o other_o some_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n first_o be_v consecrate_v and_o aff●…er_o the_o wine_n abowt_v the_o form_n of_o consecrate_v of_o the_o wine_n some_o say_v as_o bonaventure_n in_o the_o iiij_o of_o the_o sentence_n the_o viij_o distinction_n and_o many_o other_o that_o thes_n word_n hic_fw-la est_fw-la calix_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la mei_fw-la be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o form_n of_o consecrate_v the_o wine_n the_o other_o which_o be_v add_v that_o be_v to_o say_v novi_fw-la &_o aeter_fw-la ni_fw-fr testamenti_fw-la be_v only_o to_o furnissh_v thomas_n of_o aquine_n in_o the_o iij._o part_n of_o his_o somm_n say_v that_o all_o thes_n word_n be_v of_o the_o substance_n scotus_n say_v that_o be_v unknowen_a for_o certainty_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o form_n or_o not_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o determine_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o they_o ought_v to_o say_v all_o as_o iff_o they_o be_v of_o
the_o substance_n of_o the_o form_n albeit_o that_o common_o the_o doctor_n agree_v with_o bonaventure_n and_o here_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o scotus_n it_o be_v not_o yet_o know_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o wine_n but_o in_o part_n it_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o say_v the_o truth_n that_o neither_o he_o nor_o bonaventure_n nor_o thomas_n of_o aquina_n nor_o as_o many_o moo_o school_n doctor_n as_o be_v defender_n of_o the_o mass_n ever_o know_v certain_o the_o very_a poinctt_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o part_n of_o consecration_n and_o this_o be_v the_o proof_n theroff_fw-mi for_o iff_o they_o have_v know_v it_o there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o great_a a_o diversity_n and_o confusion_n of_o opinion_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o we_o can_v yet_o iff_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o other_o this_o their_o so_o great_a diversity_n show_v plain_o that_o they_o never_o know_v it_o nor_o never_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o matter_n and_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o iff_n the_o opinion_n that_o they_o defend_v be_v true_a there_o shall_v never_o have_v be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o diverse_a opinion_n what_o a_o vain_a thing_n be_v it_o than_o to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o certain_a word_n shall_v be_v make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o thing_n not_o withstond_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v be_v show_v that_o be_v that_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o certain_a word_n the_o substance_n of_o thing_n shall_v be_v change_v and_o of_o the_o other_o part_v not_o to_o know_v or_o not_o to_o be_v certain_a which_o shall_v be_v those_o word_n they_o speak_v also_o in_o such_o sort_n of_o this_o consecratoin_n that_o affter_o their_o own_o opinion_n the_o church_n or_o the_o peple_n that_o hear_v the_o mass_n be_v never_o certain_a whether_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v or_o not_o for_o the_o master_n of_o sentencis_fw-la say_v in_o the_o iiij_o that_o the_o heretic_n can_v not_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o consecrate_v and_o also_o he_o say_v you_o must_v have_v the_o intent_n for_o otherwise_o you_o consecrate_v not_o and_o who_o can_v be_v certain_a either_o of_o the_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o intent_n of_o he_o that_o celebrate_v sure_o no_o man_n be_v such_o thing_n in_o the_o consciens_fw-la of_o man_n which_o none_o seith_n but_o god_n and_o he_o that_o celebrate_v therefore_o the_o peple_n that_o hear_v the_o mass_n be_v never_o certain_a when_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v and_o when_o not_o the_o cause_n why_o this_o confusion_n be_v among_o they_o first_o be_v because_o they_o know_v not_o proper_o what_o manner_n of_o thing_n consecration_n be_v for_o consecration_n mean_v one_o thing_n and_o they_o think_v it_o shall_v have_v a_o neither_o meaning_n beside_o they_o believe_v or_o at_o the_o least_o cause_n man_n to_o think_v that_o they_o believe_v and_o they_o preach_v the_o same_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n be_v change_v the_o one_o in_o to_o the_o true_a and_o substantial_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bread_n the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o wine_n in_o to_o his_o blood_n and_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n real_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n as_o great_a and_o as_o thick_a as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o as_o now_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v whole_o in_o that_o little_a host_n and_o whole_o in_o that_o cup_n where_o the_o wine_n be_v and_o they_o will_v that_o here_o there_o shall_v come_v to_o gether_o many_o miracle_n and_o they_o hold_v that_o this_o meruelo_n change_n which_o they_o call_v transsubstanciation_n shall_v be_v do_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n and_o they_o will_v that_o consecration_n do_v mean_a change_n of_o bread_n in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o of_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o blood_n make_v with_o thes_n word_n so_o that_o they_o make_v this_o consecracyon_n as_o the_o enchanter_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v their_o enchantment_n with_o certain_a word_n which_o they_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o devel_n think_v to_o have_v virtue_n to_o work_v certain_a wonderful_a effecty_n so_o do_v they_o that_o think_v with_o thes_n word_n speak_v soft_o over_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n to_o change_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n thes_n ij_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o know_v not_o with_o what_o word_n the_o consecratyon_n be_v make_v nor_o when_o it_o be_v make_v ffor_o have_v that_o opinion_n that_o they_o have_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v make_v that_o marvelous_a change_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n thes_n word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la make_v than_o the_o difficultye_n and_o they_o know_v not_o what_o thing_n be_v shwesd_v by_o this_o word_n hoc_fw-la for_o iff_a the_o bread_n be_v show_v the_o sa_n appear_v falss_o unto_o they_o because_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o all_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v and_o when_o they_o show_v the_o bread_n the_o word_n be_v not_o yet_o speak_v than_o see_v the_o body_n be_v not_o yet_o there_o there_o can_v not_o be_v show_v by_o this_o word_n hoc_fw-la the_o body_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o and_o if_o they_o say_v they_o show_v the_o body_n by_o this_o hoc_fw-la that_o sa_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la semyth_n to_o they_o untrew_a likewise_o for_o see_v the_o body_n be_v not_o yet_o there_o in_o that_o host_n it_o can_v not_o be_v shw_v in_o it_o and_o thus_o not_o know_v how_o to_o make_v true_a that_o sa_v what_o soever_o sort_n they_o shall_v speak_v it_o they_o go_v abowt_n writhe_v it_o a_o thousand_o manner_n of_o way_n and_o will_v fain_o help_v the_o matter_n if_o they_o can_v but_o they_o find_v not_o the_o way_n for_o god_n will_v not_o as_o it_o chance_v to_o pharaos_n conjurer_n that_o can_v not_o do_v that_o they_o will_v ●…_n exo._n ●…_n so_o they_o will_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o hold_v that_o opinion_n they_o hold_v and_o for_o to_o geve_v credyt_n to_o the_o mass_n they_o will_v yet_o i_o say_v make_v that_o sa_n agree_v with_o this_o their_o opinion_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n how_o let_v they_o turn_v it_o yet_o as_o they_o will_v their_o opynyon_n stand_v christ_n sa_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la can_v be_v make_v true_a than_o their_o opynynon_n be_v most_o false_a which_o can_v stand_v with_o god_n truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o word_n it_o be_v chance_v also_o to_o they_o as_o to_o those_o that_o will_v have_v byld_v the_o great_a tower_n of_o babylon_n and_o have_v make_v it_o meruelo_n high_a as_o it_o be_v writon_n in_o genesis_n ●…_n gene._n ●…_n but_o god_n confuse_v their_o tongue_n that_o one_o do_v not_o understand_v a_o neither_o although_o that_o all_o do_v agree_v to_o the_o bylding_n of_o it_o even_o so_o it_o hapnyth_v to_o thes_n carpenter_n or_o bvilder_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o also_o will_v if_o they_o can_v lifft_v it_o up_o even_o to_o heaven_n and_o make_v it_o be_v cownt_v as_o a_o godly_a thing_n and_o a_o high_a worship_n and_o they_o all_o be_v agree_v to_o this_o workmanship_n and_o because_o they_o see_v that_o iff_n they_o hold_v not_o that_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o host_n and_o his_o true_a and_o natural_a blood_n in_o the_o cup_n the_o mass_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o price_n or_o any_o estimation_n but_o rather_o by_o and_o by_o shall_v decay_v therefore_o above_o all_o thing_n they_o take_v heed_n to_o this_o to_o persuade_v and_o by_o all_o mean_v they_o can_v to_o make_v the_o peple_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o bodily_a in_o that_o host_n and_o that_o cup._n nevertheless_o god_n have_v confuse_v their_o tong_n and_o their_o mind_n in_o to_o so_o many_o way_n and_o opinion_n in_o to_o so_o diverse_a fancy_n and_o spechis_n that_o the_o one_o be_v disagree_v and_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o this_o be_v now_o a_o plain_a and_o a_o manifest_a token_n that_o this_o workmanship_n please_v not_o god_n and_o final_o shall_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o sa_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v verify_v that_o everi_n plantinge_v which_o the_o heavinly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v shall_v be_v root_v up_o 15._o mat._n 15._o we_o do_v not_o now_o intend_v to_o go_v abowt_n to_o prove_v here_o that_o that_o their_o opinion_n be_v false_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v change_v
the_o one_o in_o to_o his_o body_n and_o other_o in_o to_o his_o blood_n because_o we_o shall_v make_v to_o long_o a_o digression_n from_o our_o purpose_n but_o with_o god_n favour_n when_o we_o have_v end_v this_o discourse_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o mass_n book_n we_o will_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n join_v to_o it_o a_o plain_a sermon_n of_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o which_o we_o will_v prove_v the_o treuth_n and_o for_o this_o time_n we_o will_v make_v it_o onli_fw-fr appear_v that_o they_o understond_v not_o what_o consecration_n mean_v therefore_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o consecrare_fw-la affter_o the_o holy_a scripture_n meane●…h_v not_o to_o change_v one_o thing_n in_o to_o a_o neither_o by_o virtue_n of_o certain_a word_n as_o they_o take_v and_o understand_v the_o consecration_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n mind_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o change_n of_o their_o substance_n in_o to_o other_o substancis_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v consecrate_v be_v not_o mar_v or_o destroy_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o more_o the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o they_o remain_v no_o long_o affter_o the_o consecration_n but_o be_v undo_v and_o destroy_v and_o be_v no_o more_o that_o they_o be_v but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v consecrate_v remain_v the_o selff_n same_o that_o it_o be_v first_o and_o be_v not_o alter_v in_o his_o substance_n but_o only_o be_v dedicate_v or_o appoint_v to_o a_o certain_a holy_a use_n to_o the_o which_o first_o it_o be_v not_o appoint_v or_o ordain_v this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o consecrare_fw-la as_o for_o example_n and_o how_o be_v be_v say_v to_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n when_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o some_o holy_a use_n as_o a_o man_n will_v say_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o common_a prayer_n even_o so_o man_n be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n when_o he_o be_v dedicate_v and_o appoint_v to_o a_o holy_a and_o sacred_a use_n of_o god_n service_n all_o christian_n be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v dedicate_v and_o appoint_v to_o his_o service_n which_o be_v a_o holy_a thing_n because_o they_o be_v the_o true_a temple_n of_o god_n in_o the_o which_o he_o dwell_v with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o many_o place_n 2._o 1._o cho_n 3._o 2._o cho_n 6._o ephe._n 2._o now_o it_o appearith_v that_o the_o man_n remainith_n still_o the_o same_o and_o be_v not_o change_v in_o substance_n because_o he_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n but_o only_o be_v dedicate_v and_o appoint_v to_o god_n service_n to_o which_o he_o be_v not_o first_o appoint_v this_o which_o we_o say_v we_o say_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o many_o place_n 27._o exo._n 13.29_o num_fw-la 6._o leviti_fw-la 27._o as_o in_o exodus_fw-la numerus_fw-la leviticus_fw-la it_o be_v writton_n in_o exodus_fw-la that_o every_o first_o bear_v male_a shall_v be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n as_o well_o of_o man_n as_o of_o beastis_fw-la also_o that_o aron_n and_o his_o child_n be_v consecrate_v to_o be_v priest_n it_o apperith_v in_o numerus_fw-la as_o well_o of_o man_n as_o woman_n that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n in_o the_o last_o of_o leviticus_fw-la where_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o consecration_n of_o man_n and_o of_o feldy_n and_o universal_o of_o everi_n consecrate_a thing_n it_o appear_v that_o that_o consecration_n do_v not_o mean_a to_o change_v one_o thing_n in_o to_o another_o with_o word_n but_o mean_v to_o dedicate_v and_o appoint_v and_o as_o a_o man_n will_v sai_o to_o appropriate_v a_o thing_n to_o god_n and_o to_o a_o holy_a use_n every_o thing_n that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o lord_n say_v god_n whether_o it_o be_v man_n beast_n or_o field_n shall_v not_o be_v sell_v nor_o can_v not_o be_v redeem_v or_o ransome_v and_o thes_n be_v the_o consecration_n make_v in_o the_o law_n which_o although_o we_o do_v not_o now_o use_v yet_o nevertheless_o they_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v what_o consecrare_fw-la mean_v and_o that_o it_o import_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o dedicate_v and_o appoint_v a_o thing_n to_o a_o holy_a use_n and_o so_o we_o will_v say_v of_o the_o consecration_n of_o bread_n and_o of_o wine_n that_o it_o be_v no_o change_v of_o their_o substancis_fw-la make_v by_o virtue_n of_o word_n but_o it_o be_v a_o appoint_v to_o a_o holy_a use_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v signify_v and_o bring_v to_o our_o remembrance_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n how_o he_o give_v they_o for_o our_o redemption_n as_o he_o himself_o say_v when_o he_o institute_v this_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 11._o matth._n 26._o marc._n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o corint_fw-la 11._o sa_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v this_o in_o his_o remembrance_n we_o have_v be_v long_o in_o this_o our_o talk_n which_o we_o have_v do_v for_o the_o ignorant_a and_o not_o for_o the_o learned_a and_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v weighty_a the_o iii_o chapter_n this_o examine_v the_o viij_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o declare_v how_o he_o that_o say_v the_o mass_n usurp_v that_o office_n that_o be_v christ_n and_o also_o say_v a_o most_o wicked_a prayer_n which_o be_v a_o great_a wrong_n to_o christ_n the_o viij_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v wherefore_o we_o thy_o servant_n and_o thy_o holy_a peple_n remember_v we_o of_o christ_n thy_o sonn_n our_o lord_n of_o so_o bless_a a_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o the_o glorios_fw-la ascension_n in_o to_o the_o heaven_n do_v offer_n to_o thy_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n of_o thy_o reward_n and_o giffte_n the_o pure_a host_n the_o holy_a host_n the_o unspotted_a host_n and_o here_o sa_v thes_n word_n be_v make_v iij._o cross_n over_o the_o host_n and_o over_o the_o cup_n consecrate_v to_o gether_o that_o be_v to_o say_v over_o both_o of_o they_o and_o affter_o he_o add_v holy_a bread_n of_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o cup_n of_o continual_a health_n and_o here_o ij_o other_o cross_n be_v make_v the_o one_o when_o the_o bread_n be_v name_v over_o the_o same_o host_n and_o the_o other_o over_o the_o cup_n when_o the_o same_o be_v name_v in_o this_o viij_o part_n be_v affirm_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o peple_n by_o the_o remembrans_fw-la that_o they_o have_v of_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n do_v offer_n unto_o god_n that_o host_n and_o that_o cup_n consecrate_v which_o be_v as_o they_o think_v the_o true_a body_n and_o very_a blood_n of_o christ._n but_o where_o be_v it_o find_v in_o all_o the_o whole_a scripture_n that_o christ_n or_o god_n do_v ever_o ordain_v that_o either_o the_o priest_n or_o the_o peple_n shall_v offer_v unto_o god_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o deed_n we_o find_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v a_o memory_n of_o such_o a_o offering_n as_o christ_n have_v make_v and_o therefore_o he_o have_v ordain_v this_o sacrament_n to_o thintent_v that_o we_o shall_v use_v the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o oblation_n but_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v to_o god_n either_o the_o body_n or_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o sonn_n that_o have_v god_n not_o appoint_v we_o nor_o yet_o christ_n nor_o any_fw-la apostel_n ever_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o for_o this_o office_n to_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n belong_v only_o to_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o high_a and_o everlasting_a priest_n 7.9.10_o heb._n 7.9.10_o and_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o us._n and_o the_o some_o christ_n have_v do_v it_o once_o for_o all_o when_o he_o be_v offer_v and_o die_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o it_o need_v not_o to_o do_v it_o offtner_o because_o that_o that_o only_a time_n have_v suffice_v to_o satisfy_v god_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a and_o that_o which_o we_o do_v now_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o the_o offering_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o be_v a_o memory_n of_o that_o offering_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o memory_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o selff_n same_o thing_n but_o a_o remembrance_n of_o it_o and_o if_o any_o will_v say_v for_o all_o this_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o christian_n to_o offer_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o peter_n say_v that_o the_o christian_n be_v a_o holy_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v spiritual_a offering_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o this_o i_o say_v that_o peter_n mean_v not_o here_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o mean_v of_o those_o hostess_fw-la
that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n the_o which_o not_o only_o the_o priest_n but_o all_o christian_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o offer_v unto_o god_n accept_v by_o jesus_n christ._n and_o thes_n host_n or_o sacrifice_n we_o be_v first_o ourselves_o which_o ought_v to_o offer_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n ass_n paul_n exhort_v to_o the_o romans_n sa_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o you_o will_v give_v up_o or_o offer_v your_o body_n a_o holy_a live_a and_o please_a host_n unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a serve_v of_o god_n this_o sacrifice_n be_v make_v by_o deny_v of_o ourseluis_fw-la beside_o that_o praiss_n thankesgeve_a prayer_n allme_n deed_n and_o to_o be_v short_a all_o duty_n off_o christian_a devotion_n be_v sacrifice_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o this_o be_v trowth_n peter_n speak_v not_o here_o to_o the_o prestis_n only_o but_o he_o speak_v to_o all_o the_o christian_a peple_n and_o to_o all_o the_o faithful_a who_o he_o call_v a_o choose_a peple_n a_o kingly_a presthode_n etc._n etc._n the_o press_v than_o that_o say_v the_o mass_n usurp_v the_o office_n that_o belong_v only_o to_o christ_n but_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o this_o yet_o more_o largy_o in_o the_o iiij_o part_n there_o follow_v further_o more_o in_o this_o part_n a_o prayer_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o which_o thing_n or_o else_o upon_o which_o giffte_n and_o speak_v of_o that_o host_n and_o that_o wine_n consecrate_v which_o affter_o their_o opinion_n be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o the_o natural_a blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o ihe_v which_o thing_n say_v he_o vouchsave_o to_o look_n with_o a_o helpful_a and_o a_o favourable_a cowntenance_n and_o to_o accept_v they_o as_o thou_o do_v vouchsave_o to_o accept_v the_o giffte_n of_o thy_o just_a servant_n abel_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o patriarch_n abraham_n and_o that_o holy_a sacrifice_n unspotted_a host_n that_o thy_o high_a press_a melchisedech_n do_v offer_v unto_o the._n they_o that_o have_v make_v this_o prayer_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v which_o be_v the_o nine_o part_n either_o they_o byleve_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o host_n or_o in_o that_o cup_n and_o so_o be_v heretic_n affter_o the_o opinion_n of_o defender_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o hold_v as_o a_o artickle_a of_o our_o faith_n that_o christ_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o else_o if_o they_o bylevid_v it_o they_o have_v speak_v most_o folissh_o and_o wicked_o for_o in_o this_o prayer_n be_v desire_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o accept_v the_o giffte_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thes_n iij._o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o abel_n abraham_n and_o melchisedeck_n which_o be_v plain_o man_n and_o not_o withowt_n sin_n although_o just_a by_o god_n grace_n and_o have_v need_n of_o the_o forgevenes_n of_o sin_n iff_o it_o be_v so_o than_o as_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v how_o do_v this_o prayer_n desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v accept_v the_o bodi_fw-la and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n as_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o those_o 3._o as_o though_o his_o own_o sonn_n be_v not_o more_o accept_v but_o rather_o less_o accept_v than_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thes_n 3._o which_o be_v sacrifice_n of_o unreasonable_a beast_n and_o of_o plain_a creature_n and_o who_o dowt_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v withowt_n measure_v more_o accept_v than_o as_o many_o sacrifice_n as_o ever_o be_v make_v in_o the_o world_n yea_o who_o dowthet_n that_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n all_o the_o offering_n all_o the_o service_n all_o the_o good_a work_n of_o thes_n iij._o fore_n name_v and_o of_o all_o other_o man_n that_o ever_o please_v or_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n be_v accept_v by_o jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o body_n and_o by_o his_o blood_n by_o the_o which_o god_n be_v pacify_v with_o we_o who_o dowt_v this_o but_o the_o infidel_n and_o the_o wicked_a man_n and_o this_o prayer_n desier_v that_o god_n will_v so_o accept_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n as_o he_o do_v the_o blood_n of_o beast_n ah_o blasphemos_fw-la prayer_n thes_n be_v those_o great_a mystery_n that_o this_o canon_n have_v which_o william_n durant_n expownd_v with_o so_o great_a reverence_n but_o some_o man_n may_v paraventure_fw-fr say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o desire_v in_o this_o prayer_n absolute_o that_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o themselves_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o those_o iij._o holy_a man_n because_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o be_v more_o acceptable_a for_o themselves_o than_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o all_o man_n of_o the_o world_n but_o there_o be_v desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o so_o be_v the_o prayer_n to_o be_v understond_v this_o answer_n seem_v subtle_a and_o some_o contentio_n man_n might_n paraventure_fw-fr show_n himself_o stout_a with_o it_o but_o it_o be_v nothing_o worth_a for_o let_v they_o say_v what_o they_o will_v it_o shall_v be_v always_o inconvenient_a ffor_o iff_n they_o will_v desire_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o themselves_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o simple_a man_n no_o man_n will_v ever_o say_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v conveniente_a and_o even_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v inconuenyent_n also_o to_o pray_v that_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n off_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v accept_v for_o we_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o those_o iij_o wear_n because_o it_o be_v very_a convenyent_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v much_o more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o we_o than_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o those_o iij._o ffor_o because_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v obtain_v we_o forgevenes_n of_o sin_n redemption_n grace_n and_o everlasting_a life_n a_o thing_n that_o those_o sacrifice_n can_v not_o do_v to_o those_o iij._o that_o do_v they_o thos_n sacrifice_n be_v in_o deed_n figure_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o do_v not_o take_v a_o way_n sin_n nor_o give_v not_o health_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o hebrew_n ●…_n he._n ●…_n here_o william_n durant_n say_v in_o his_o ratyonall_a that_o this_o word_n sicut_fw-la do_v mean_v likelyne_n and_o not_o quantytye_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o worth_a for_o iff_a we_o shall_v offer_v any_o gyfft_v that_o be_v a_o plain_a creature_n we_o may_v ask_v this_o but_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n be_v offer_v who_o can_v but_o be_v more_o accept_v to_o god_n withowt_n comparison_n than_o those_o sacrifice_n this_o prayer_n be_v fond_a and_o be_v as_o if_o for_o a_o great_a prince_n that_o have_v infinite_a riches_n some_o friend_n of_o he_o will_v desire_v and_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v make_v the_o same_o prince_n as_o rich_a as_o a_o private_a citizin_v such_o a_o prayer_n shall_v be_v scorn_n worthy_a and_o folissh_a even_o so_o be_v this_o and_o absolute_o to_o he_o that_o well_o consider_v the_o matter_n he_o that_o make_v this_o prayer_n do_v not_o byleve_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v real_o in_o that_o host_n and_o cup_n but_o beleve_v that_o there_o be_v thon_o bread_n and_o wine_n even_o as_o in_o baptism_n we_o have_v no_o change_n of_o the_o water_n but_o the_o water_n remain_v water_n as_o before_o although_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n which_o it_o be_v not_o before_o yet_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n do_v not_o change_v the_o water_n as_o concern_v the_o substance_n even_o so_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n remain_v bread_n and_o wine_n still_o for_o iff_o he_o have_v think_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n realli_n he_o will_v never_o have_v make_v that_o prayer_n for_o it_o be_v to_o fond_a iff_a christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o and_o he_o byleve_v it_o not_o it_o follow_v according_a to_o their_o opinion_n that_o this_o prayer_n be_v heresy_n the_o four_o chapter_n here_o be_v examine_v the_o ix_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v most_o wicked_a it_o examine_v also_o the_o x._o part_n which_o be_v folissh_a and_o speak_v against_o itself_o and_o it_o examine_v also_o the_o xi_o and_o last_o part_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n the_o ix_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v this_o prayer_n on_o our_o kneis_n we_o beseech_v the_o almighty_a god_n command_v that_o thes_n thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o host_n and_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v carry_v by_o thy_o holy_a angel_n hand_n to_o thy_o high_a altar_n in_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o thy_o divine_a majesty_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o as_o many_o of_o we_o as_o shall_v receive_v of_o this_o partake_n
of_o the_o altar_n the_o most_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o sonn_n may_v be_v fullfil_v with_o every_o heavenly_a blessing_n and_o grace_n through_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o here_o be_v make_v iij._o cross_n deny_v mass_n pryste_n make_v ij_o manifest_a lie_n in_o the_o canon_n even_o when_o they_o be_v most_o devout_o at_o mass_n which_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v one_o up_o on_o the_o host_n when_o the_o body_n be_v name_v another_o over_o the_o cup_n when_o the_o same_o be_v name_v the_o three_o be_v make_v cross_v himself_o and_o at_o this_o prayer_n the_o press_v bow_v himself_o a_o little_a but_o he_o ought_v to_o knee_n down_o see_v he_o say_v that_o he_o pray_v up_o on_o his_o kneis_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o knee_n but_o only_o bow_v himself_o as_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o canon_n he_o say_v also_o that_o he_o kneel_v and_o yet_o he_o kneel_v not_o and_o here_o william_n durant_n upon_o thes_n word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v command_v that_o thes_n thing_n may_v be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o holy_a angel_n upon_o the_o high_a altar_n &c_n &c_n say_v that_o they_o be_v of_o so_o great_a depth_n that_o man_n understanding_n be_v very_fw-la hardly_o sufficyent_a to_o enter_v in_o to_o they_o and_o mind_v to_o expound_v they_o he_o bring_v forth_o first_o gregory_n word_n register_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o consecracyon_n the_o 5._o distinction_n cap._n quid_fw-la sit_fw-la sanguis_fw-la and_o because_o he_o seem_v not_o satiffy_v he_o bring_v forth_o iij._n other_o exposityon_n the_o first_o be_v that_o that_o word_n hec_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v thes_n thing_n may_v mean_v not_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n but_o the_o supplicacyon_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o prayer_n the_o angel_n offer_v unto_o god_n and_o than_o he_o gevyth_v he_o neither_o significatyon_n which_o do_v not_o satisfy_v he_o and_o affter_o he_o geve_v also_o the_o three_o that_o be_v this_o command_v that_o thes_n thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o mistycall_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v god_n warfaring_a church_n may_v be_v carry_v to_o the_o high_a altar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o victorios_fw-la church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o holy_a angel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o christ_n who_o be_v a_o angel_n of_o the_o great_a council_n as_o esai_n in_o the_o ix_o say_v he_o add_v yet_o a_o neither_o which_o for_o shortness_n i_o will_v let_v pass_v it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n sure_o to_o defend_v a_o unjust_a cause_n for_o a_o man_n be_v constrain_v to_o say_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n id_fw-la need_v not_o here_o that_o master_n durant_n shall_v find_v out_o so_o many_o gloose_v for_o the_o canon_n speak_v when_o it_o say_v thes_n thing_n of_o the_o host_n and_o of_o the_o wine_n consecrate_v as_o it_o speak_v before_o in_o the_o other_o prayer_n and_o speak_v not_o neither_o of_o the_o prayer_n nor_o of_o the_o mystical_a body_n ffor_o it_o make_v not_o mention_v neither_o of_o the_o one_o nor_o of_o the_o other_o in_o the_o other_o prayer_n and_o desyre_v in_o this_o prayer_n that_o god_n will_v command_v thes_n thing_n to_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o angel_n there_o be_v show_v by_o those_o word_n thes_n thing_n the_o selff_a same_o off_o which_o he_o speak_v off_o in_o the_o other_o prayer_n immedyate_o go_v before_o and_o iff_o he_o shall_v have_v mean_v of_o other_o thing_n it_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v to_o the_o purpose_n more_o over_o iff_n it_o shall_v have_v mean_v of_o the_o prayer_n or_o of_o the_o mystical_a body_n thes_n word_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v of_o so_o great_a depth_n as_o he_o say_v yea_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v very_o easy_a to_o understand_v which_o be_v against_o durant_n himself_o therefore_o than_o the_o canon_n speak_v of_o the_o host_n and_o wine_n consecrate_v which_o be_v as_o they_o think_v the_o very_a body_n and_o the_o very_a blood_n off_o jesus_n christ_n and_o desyer_v that_o they_o may_v be_v carry_v and_o present_v upon_o god_n high_a altar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o heaven_n in_o god_n sight_n what_o a_o tale_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n ●…huld_v be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o angel_n and_o pre●…ented_v in_o to_o god_n sight_n be_v not_o christ_n now_o by_o he_o selff_n present_a in_o heaven_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o father_n withowt_n be_v carry_v and_o present_v by_o the_o angel_n what_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v that_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v that_o he_o sit_v there_o contynual_o x._o he._n x._o what_o need_v it_o than_o to_o carry_v he_o where_o he_o be_v already_o iff_n any_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o angel_n may_v carry_v he_o so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o that_o affter_o that_o sort_n he_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n this_o sa_v be_v a_o very_a monster_n and_o vanytye_n for_o christ_n so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o he_o be_v there_o unpartable_o as_o they_o think_v he_o be_v there_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o can_v not_o be_v carry_v as_o the_o school_n man_n themselves_o say_v more_o over_o iff_n he_o shall_v be_v carry_v forth_o affter_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o angel_n shall_v cari_fw-la the_o sacrament_n in_o to_o heaven_n which_o be_v never_o see_v i_o have_v say_v now_o that_o he_o that_o have_v put_v in_o thes_n ij_o prayer_n in_o to_o the_o canon_n by_o the_o talcke_a that_o he_o make_v do_v show_v that_o he_o by_o leve_v not_o christ_n corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o we_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o iff_o he_o have_v bileve_v it_o he_o will_v never_o have_v say_v such_o word_n iff_o he_o have_v have_v any_o understond_n he_o than_o that_o make_v thes_n prayer_n the_o opinion_n of_o thes_n school_n man_n stand_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o master_n durant_n to_o defend_v the_o canon_n because_o he_o see_v that_o thes_n word_n according_a to_o his_o opinion_n can_v not_o stone_v he_o magnify_v they_o as_o divine_a thing_n but_o it_o need_v not_o be_v man_n word_n and_o not_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o much_o to_o magnify_v they_o and_o to_o defend_v express_a error_n desire_v to_o make_v they_o holy_a matter_n as_o he_o be_v force_v to_o do_v in_o that_o his_o rational_a or_o reason_n giver_n the_o x._o part_n be_v the_o memento_n in_o which_o the_o dead_a be_v pray_v for_o and_o thus_o it_o say_v also_o o_o lord_n have_v in_o thy_o remembrance_n thy_o servant_n man_n and_o woman_n here_o be_v make_v a_o particular_a rememberan_n for_o certain_a particular_a dead_a folk_n as_o like_v he_o that_o say_v mass_n and_o affter_o be_v add_v the_o which_o be_v go_v before_o we_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o faith_n and_o sleep_v in_o the_o sleep_v of_o peace_n to_o thes_n o_o lord_n and_o to_o all_o those_o that_o rest_n in_o christ_n we_o pray_v the_o that_o thou_o will_v grant_v place_n of_o comfort_n of_o light_n and_o of_o peace_n through_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o lord_n amen_o here_o master_n durant_n in_o thexposition_n of_o this_o part_n say_v that_o on_o the_o sunday_n through_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o soul_n shall_v have_v rest_n he_z meanith_n i_o think_v that_o they_o suffer_v not_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n but_o the_o other_o day_n they_o do_v o_o master_n durant_n it_o be_v very_o honest_a that_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n also_o shall_v keep_v the_o feast_n but_o i_o meruel_a why_o they_o have_v not_o rest_v also_o on_o the_o friday_n on_o which_o day_n our_o saviour_n suffer_v to_o take_v from_o we_o the_o pain_n that_o we_o have_v deserve_v 53._o esay_n 53._o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v in_o so_o many_o place_n and_o chief_o in_o esay_n the_o prophet_n where_o it_o be_v writton_n that_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o greffe_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v upon_o he_o all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o how_o he_o be_v beat_v for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o peple_n and_o other_o such_o saing_n which_o be_v there_o thapostle_n paul_n will_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v difference_n of_o day_n in_o christ_n church_n in_o this_o life_n and_o rebuke_v the_o galathian_n who_o observe_v day_n 4._o gala._n 4._o and_o he_o write_v to_o the_o colossian_n let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_v 2._o colos_n 2._o or_o in_o part_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n or_o of_o a_o new_a moon_n or_o off_o the_o sabbath_n day_n etc._n etc._n and_o shall_v we_o put_v
not_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o signify_v that_o christ_n sometime_o cry_v out_o 27._o mathei_n 27._o as_o when_o he_o cry_v on_o the_o cross_n heli_n heli_n and_o when_o also_o preach_v he_o cry_v if_o any_o be_v thirst_n let_v he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o drink_n and_o the_o rational_a a_o little_a affter_o say_v that_o be_v cause_n we_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o deserve_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o the_o thing_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v except_o it_o be_v give_v we_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n and_o of_o the_o bless_a peter_n and_o paul_n and_o other_o saint_n therefore_o we_o do_v call_v they_o here_o to_o our_o help_n but_o i_o ask_v by_o who_o intercession_n be_v sin_n forgeven_v by_o peter_n paulis_n or_o the_o saint_n all_o which_o have_v their_o sin_n iff_n this_o prayer_n intend_v that_o that_o the_o rational_a say_v it_o be_v blasphemos_fw-la as_o though_o we_o deserve_v not_o pardon_n eycept_v by_o the_o blissed_a virgin_n and_o of_o the_o bless_a peter_n paul_n andrew_n and_o other_o saint_n and_o where_o be_v this_o sound_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o we_o deserve_v not_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n how_o do_v this_o rational_a know_v this_o how_o can_v we_o sure_o speak_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n iff_v not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o word_n of_o god_n thorowowt_o say_v that_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v we_o by_o christ_n entreat_v and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o means_n advocate_n and_o entreater_n and_o it_o appoint_v no_o neither_o but_o he_o nor_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o other_o and_o this_o prayer_n will_v have_v that_o by_o saint_n prayer_n sin_n be_v forgeven_v us._n why_o say_v he_o not_o by_o christis_fw-la intercession_n why_o do_v we_o than_o fain_o to_o ourselves_o of_o our_o fancy_n other_o advocate_n and_o other_o intreaters_n but_o let_v the_o rational_a with_o his_o mass_n tell_v i_o a_o little_a the_o forename_a saint_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n by_o who_o intercession_n deserve_v they_o pardon_v have_v all_o have_v one_o sin_n or_o other_o sureli_n all_o have_v need_n of_o pardon_n it_o be_v necessari_fw-la iff_n they_o will_v answer_v well_o that_o they_o say_v by_o christ_n iff_o it_o be_v so_o why_o do_v they_o allege_v other_o than_o he_o in_o the_o forgevenes_n of_o sin_n what_o man_n so_o ever_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o so_o much_o as_o by_o one_o only_a way_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v forgeven_v as_o s._n john_n say_v in_o his_o 1._o pistell_n that_o he_o be_v the_o propycyation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o only_o for_o we_o but_o for_o all_o those_o of_o the_o world_n when_o this_o prayer_n be_v do_v the_o host_n be_v break_v over_o the_o cup_n in_o 2._o part_n and_o one_o of_o those_o party_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o pa●…en_n and_o the_o other_o also_o be_v break_v in_o 2._o part_n and_o the_o one_o of_o thes_n 2._o second_v partis_fw-la be_v lay_v also_o upon_o the_o paten_a with_o the_o other_o that_o first_o be_v put_v there_o and_o affter_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n that_o other_o of_o the_o 2._o pecy_n also_o over_o the_o cup_n he_o say_v per_fw-la omne_fw-la secula_fw-la seculorum_fw-la and_o amen_o be_v answer_v and_o affter_o he_o add_v pax_fw-la domini_fw-la sit_fw-la semper_fw-la vo_o biscum_fw-la and_o sa_v thes_n word_n there_o be_v make_v 3._o crossis_fw-la with_o that_o piece_n of_o the_o host_n over_o the_o cup_n when_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v and_o the_o crossis_fw-la make_v the_o press_v say_v thes_n word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v the_o mix_n and_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v unto_o we_o that_o do_v or_o shall_v receive_v they_o unto_o everlasting_a life_n and_o all_o thes_n thing_n have_v their_o signification_n and_o their_o mystery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o superstition_n but_o why_o do_v they_o not_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n as_o christ_n teach_v christ_n do_v not_o put_v any_o part_n of_o the_o bread_n in_o to_o the_o cup_n but_o several_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n first_o the_o bread_n which_o signify_v the_o body_n after_o the_o wine_n which_o signify_v the_o blood_n each_o one_o a_o part_n by_o itself_o and_o do_v not_o mingle_v they_o together_o as_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v sometime_o with_o common_a bread_n that_o be_v eat_v sopt_v in_o wine_n this_o be_v not_o convenyent_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v handle_v otherwise_o than_o as_o christ_n have_v teach_v us._n here_o the_o racyonall_a say_v that_o this_o mixture_n be_v make_v for_o iij._o cause_n the_o first_o be_v to_o signify_v that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o withowt_n the_o blood_n nor_o the_o blood_n withowt_n the_o body_n the_o second_o be_v to_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v not_o but_o one_o sacrament_n the_o three_o be_v to_o declare_v the_o return_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o body_n and_o what_o mean_v it_o that_o the_o apostel_n and_o the_o prymatyve_a church_n the_o which_o keep_v the_o singleness_n of_o the_o institucyon_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o add_v thes_n myngling_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o handell_v the_o divyne_a misterye_n affter_o our_o own_o fasshion_n yea_o rather_o to_o make_v a_o mock_n at_o they_o and_o even_o as_o they_o themselves_o have_v add_v why_o also_o may_v not_o we_o make_v other_o addicyon_n and_o gyve_v they_o their_o significacyon_n and_o add_v everi_n day_n to_o this_o mass_n even_o till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o make_v it_o so_o long_o that_o they_o shall_v stand_v a_o hole_n year_n in_o sa_v it_o than_o what_o mean_v this_o word_n consecracyon_n when_o the_o press_a say_v let_v this_o mixture_n and_o consecracyon_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v maid_n be_v not_o the_o consecracyon_n make_v already_o and_o the_o bread_n turn_v in_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o blood_n as_o they_o say_v what_o need_v it_o more_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v again_o a_o new_a iff_o it_o be_v make_v already_o except_o they_o will_v understand_v and_o gulf_n affter_o this_o fasshon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v the_o comixcyon_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n that_o we_o make_v and_o the_o consecracyon_n already_o make_v become_v to_o we_o that_o shall_v take_v it_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o profit_n of_o everlasting_a life_n but_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v if_o this_o be_v his_o mind_n or_o no_o that_o ordain_v this_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o agnus_n dei_fw-la of_o the_o iiij_o prayer_n that_o go_v before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o ij_o that_o follow_v how_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o last_o prayer_n in_o the_o mass_n be_v wicked_a and_o some_o of_o they_o speak_v against_o the_o pryvate_a mass_n the_o agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la follow_v which_o be_v say_v iij._o time_n affter_o that_o be_v say_v iij._o prayer_n the_o first_o dester_v that_o god_n will_v not_o look_v upon_o the_o sin_n of_o he_o that_o say_v the_o mass_n and_o that_o he_o will_v according_o to_o his_o will_v agree_v and_o make_v one_o the_o church_n the_o second_o dester_v that_o by_o the_o most_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v deliver_v he_o from_o iniquity_n and_o from_o all_o his_o evels_n and_o praith_o that_o he_o may_v be_v bring_v near_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o may_v never_o be_v sonder_v from_o he_o the_o three_o desire_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o become_v his_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o defence_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n when_o thes_n iij_o prayer_n be_v say_v he_o take_v the_o host_n in_o his_o hand_n sa_v i_o will_v take_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o will_v call_v up_o on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o knock_v his_o breast_n iij._o time_n sa_v also_o thrice_o domine_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la dignus_fw-la that_o be_v lord_n i_o ā_o unworthy_a and_o affter_o he_o have_v take_v the_o host_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n keep_v my_o soul_n to_o everlasting_a life_n amen_n and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o he_o receive_v the_o host_n and_o affter_o he_o take_v the_o cup_n in_o his_o hand_n sa_v quid_fw-la retribuam_fw-la domino_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v what_o shall_v i_o render_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o say_v thus_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n keep_v my_o soul_n to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o receive_v the_o cup_n thone_n and_o other_o be_v receive_v the_o press_v affterwardes_o
the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o of_o the_o hole_n mass_n either_o they_o mean_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v or_o else_o affter_o that_o they_o be_v consecrate_v which_o way_n so_o ever_o they_o take_v it_o it_o be_v false_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n although_o i_o know_v that_o affter_o both_o sortis_fw-la they_o will_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n both_o affter_o the_o consecration_n and_o before_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o affter_o the_o consecration_n follow_v their_o opinion_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v a_o sacrice_n for_o as_o they_o think_v christ_n all_o hole_n be_v there_o in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o only_o christ_n the_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sacrifice_n also_o that_o they_o hold_v that_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n before_o the_o consecration_n how_o can_v they_o deny_v it_o so_o many_o prayer_n secret_n and_o chief_o the_o canon_n affirm_v it_o the_o which_o canon_n in_o the_o first_o part_n praith_o god_n that_o he_o will_v bless_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o call_v they_o holy_a untasted_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o in_o the_o second_o part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o memento_n he_o call_v they_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n the_o which_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o in_o the_o four_o part_n he_o call_v they_o a_o oblacyon_n and_o in_o the_o fifft_v he_o praith_v god_n that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v taccept_v this_o oblation_n so_o that_o it_o may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o best_a belove_a sonn_n so_o that_o than_o they_o will_v that_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o consecrate_v shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o ransome_v of_o soul_n and_o they_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v become_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n iff_o they_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v become_v then_o be_v they_o not_o yet_o consecrate_v for_o when_o they_o be_v consecrate_v they_o be_v become_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o they_o think_v and_o it_o need_v not_o any_o more_o to_o pray_v that_o they_o shall_v become_v so_o because_o they_o be_v already_o so_o becomne_v that_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n unconsecrate_v shall_v not_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o prove_v for_o that_o according_a to_o tholy_a scripture_n the_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n be_v that_o that_o have_v redeem_v us._n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o redemption_n be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o the_o forgevenes_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o paul_n as_o it_o be_v writton_n to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o to_o the_o colossian_n 1._o eph._n 1._o collos_n 1._o but_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v neither_o with_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o only_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o unspotted_a lamb_n christ_n as_o peter_n say_v in_o his_o first_o pistol_n 1_o 1._o petri_n 1_o you_o know_v that_o you_o be_v not_o redeem_v from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n which_o you_o take_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o elder_n with_o fadeable_a thing_n as_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o with_o christ_n precios_fw-la blood_n as_o of_o a_o hole_n and_o undefyled_a lamb_n be_v not_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n unconsecrate_v thing_n fade_v able_a and_o corruptible_a how_o vile_a do_v this_o mass_n make_v christ_n redemption_n of_o how_o little_a value_n his_o bless_a blood_n god_n will_v not_o pardon_v sine_z but_o that_o there_o be_v pay_v so_o great_a a_o price_n so_o great_a a_o passion_n so_o high_a a_o blood_n and_o so_o great_a a_o death_n as_o that_o be_v of_o his_o sonn_n and_o they_o will_v that_o sin_n shall_v be_v pardon_v with_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o neither_o but_o plain_n bread_n and_o plain_a wine_n that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n when_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v shall_v be_v no_o sacrifice_n although_o there_o be_v no_o more_o neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n jesus_n as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o i_o say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n they_o be_v so_o much_o less_o a_o sacrifice_n iff_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n remain_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o sacrament_n as_o without_o doubt_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o neither_o in_o substan_n but_o bread_n and_o wine_n consecrate_v that_o be_v to_o say_v appoint_v to_o the_o use_n to_o which_o christ_n appoint_v they_o that_o be_v to_o sai_fw-mi to_o bring_v in_o to_o remembrans_fw-la his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o the_o sacrament_n i_o say_v be_v no_o sacrifice_n in_o what_o so_o ever_o sort_v it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n i_o prove_v it_o by_o paul_n in_o his_o pistol_n to_o the_o hebrew_n 7.8.9.10_o hebre._n 7.8.9.10_o the_o which_o if_o the_o favourer_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v but_o supperficial_o understand_v they_o will_v never_o so_o bold_o have_v utter_v that_o the_o mass_n or_o let_v it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v writton_n first_o in_o that_o pistol_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o law_n many_o pryste_n because_o they_o be_v mortal_a but_o christ_n who_o be_v immortal_a have_v now_o theverlasting_a pristhode_n and_o therefore_o can_v save_v for_o ever_o all_o those_o that_o go_v to_o god_n by_o he_o alwey_n live_v to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v entreat_v god_n for_o us._n and_o he_o add_v a_o none_o affter_o that_o those_o preste_n or_o else_o bysshop_n have_v need_n toffer_v sacryfyce_n not_o only_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o peple_n but_o for_o their_o own_o also_o but_o it_o behove_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v undefyled_a innocent_a the_o which_o shall_v not_o have_v need_n everi_n day_n toffer_n for_o himself_o and_o affter_o for_o the_o peple_n because_o he_o do_v this_o once_o when_o he_o offer_v himself_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o the_o law_n appoint_v man_n bishop_n that_o have_v weakenessy_n 110._o psal_n 110._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v to_o sai_fw-mi the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o which_o davyd_v speak_v in_o the_o psalm_n appoint_v the_o son_n for_o ever_o consummate_a that_o be_v to_o say_v perfect_a by_o thes_n word_n ij_o thing_n be_v give_v we_o to_o be_v understand_v first_o that_o none_o can_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o may_v avail_v as_o before_o god_n for_o sin_n except_o christ_n that_o be_v pure_a innocent_a separate_v from_o sinner_n perfect_a and_o everlasting_a bishop_n who_o have_v in_o such_o sort_n offer_v himself_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o press_a himself_o and_o the_o priest_n the_o sacrifice_n itself_o for_o that_o toffer_n sacrifice_n for_o sin_n it_o behove_v not_o only_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v clean_o pure_a and_o withowt_n spott_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o that_o offer_v it_o shall_v be_v himself_o also_o clean_a and_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v need_n toffer_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n it_o be_v know_v off_o old_a that_o among_o man_n also_o when_o a_o thing_n be_v present_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o that_o be_v in_o displeasure_n of_o any_o great_a lord_n although_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v good_a yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v acceptable_a because_o that_o he_o which_o present_v it_o be_v not_o favour_v iff_o it_o be_v so_o than_o that_o he_o who_o offer_v must_v be_v clean_a and_o no_o sinner_n the_o preste_n that_o say_v mass_n can_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v unclean_a and_o sinner_n and_o albeit_o they_o shall_v in_o deed_n offer_v christ_n once_o again_o that_o offering_n can_v not_o avail_v for_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o bring_v to_o pass_v of_o such_o a_o effect_n that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o other_o shall_v be_v clean_a and_o withowt_n spott_n not_o only_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o also_o the_o sacrificer_n a_o thing_n that_o can_v not_o be_v among_o as_o many_o as_o be_v but_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o behove_v that_o christ_n himself_o shall_v be_v he_o that_o shall_v offer_v and_o make_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o no_o neither_o but_o himself_o because_o he_o alone_o be_v without_o sin_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v sinner_n than_o it_o gevyth_v also_o tunderstand_v that_o it_o need_v not_o any_o more_o to_o do_v sacrifice_n for_o sin_n because_o he_o that_o have_v do_v sacrifice_n christ_n have_v satisfy_v have_v do_v once_o for_o ever_o because_o it_o be_v perfect_a be_v the_o same_o christ_n theverlasting_a bishop_n that_o offer_v himself_o iff_o that_o have_v suffice_v be_v once_o do_v what_o need_v it_o to_o make_v other_o sacrifice_n or_o to_o make_v again_o the_o same_o at_o other_o time_n sure_o
office_n between_o god_n and_o man_n do_v send_v their_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n to_o god_n some_o time_n this_o name_n mass_n be_v a_o noun_n proper_a and_o do_v signify_v christ_n first_o send_v from_o the_o father_n to_o we_o and_o send_v from_o we_o to_o the_o father_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o before_o he_o he_o may_v entreat_v for_o we_o albeit_o for_o shortness_n i_o do_v not_o recite_v all_o his_o opinion_n some_o other_o as_o john_n rewcklin_fw-mi a_o man_n very_o well_o learn_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n say_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v no_o greke_n name_n nor_o latin_a but_o hebrewe_n and_o be_v as_o much_o to_o sai_fw-mi as_o sacrifice_v and_o now_o our_o massemonger_n will_v that_o the_o mass_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n othersome_a say_v as_o polidor_n virgil_n of_o urbine_fw-la that_o missa_fw-la be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o geve_v leave_n to_o depart_v or_o licens_v the_o peple_n that_o they_o may_v go_v their_o way_n that_o be_v to_o saythat_a licence_n and_o leave_n be_v give_fw-ge they_o that_o they_o may_v depart_v for_o so_o much_o as_o in_o old_a time_n no_o man_n ought_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o holy_a thing_n they_o be_v present_a except_o licens_fw-la be_v give_v they_o and_o missa_fw-la be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_z missio_fw-la or_o dimissio_fw-la a_o licens_v or_o geve_v leave_n to_o depart_v because_o that_o be_v end_v the_o peple_n be_v license_v to_o go_v at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o their_o house_n he_o say_v beside_o many_o thing_n up_o on_o this_o matter_n but_o because_o i_o know_v that_o this_o name_n have_v a_o abominable_a signification_n i_o little_a desire_n to_o search_v any_o further_a for_o the_o begin_n of_o so_o ungracios_fw-la a_o name_n when_o it_o shall_v have_v begin_v to_o be_v so_o name_v and_o who_o shall_v have_v find_v it_o out_o it_o be_v not_o well_o know_v it_o appearith_v that_o from_o pope_n gregory_n time_n the_o first_o hitherto_o it_o have_v be_v use_v and_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o i_o ever_o red_a that_o before_o his_o time_n it_o be_v use_v the_o four_o chapter_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o gather_v together_o and_o a_o heap_n yea_o a_o sea_n of_o abuse_n wikednessis_fw-la and_o superstition_n it_o be_v not_o our_o purpose_n nor_o mind_n to_o tell_v all_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o mass_n because_o we_o know_v they_o not_o all_o and_o although_o we_o know_v they_o they_o be_v so_o many_o that_o to_o go_fw-mi abowt_n to_o write_v they_o all_o they_o will_v make_v to_o great_a a_o book_n it_o shall_v suffice_v we_o write_v some_o of_o they_o by_o the_o which_o may_v be_v sufficientli_v judge_v what_o manner_n a_o thing_n this_o mass_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a be_v the_o worship_v the_o host_n and_o the_o cup_n the_o which_o be_v a_o idolatry_n for_o from_o whence_o gather_v they_o that_o the_o sacrament_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v the_o sacramentis_fw-la ought_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o reverens_fw-la as_o holy_a thing_n and_o godly_a institution_n but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v we_o have_v it_o not_o in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o by_o any_o example_n of_o the_o apostel_n or_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a church_n even_o as_o the_o baptism_n be_v not_o worship_v but_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o make_v we_o sure_a and_o certain_a that_o our_o sinnis_n be_v forgevin_v we_o by_o christ_n so_o neither_o the_o bread_n or_o let_v it_o be_v the_o host_n nor_o the_o cup_n aught_o to_o be_v worship_v nor_o christ_n do_v not_o institute_v they_o to_o this_o end_n but_o be_v do_v institute_v they_o in_o remembrans_fw-la of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n gevin_v for_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n this_o remembrans_fw-la the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n already_o work_v withowt_n that_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v worship_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o iff_n they_o shall_v be_v worship_v the_o apostle_n when_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n they_o will_v have_v worshipd_v it_o but_o they_o do_v not_o worship_v it_o so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v by_o the_o story_n of_o the_o evangeliste_n yea_o they_o sit_v still_o at_o the_o table_n and_o it_o well_o appearith_v by_o a_o certain_a text_n of_o honorius_n the_o pope_n in_o the_o iij._o book_n of_o the_o decretall_n in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr celebratione_fw-la missarum_fw-la that_o this_o worship_v be_v no_o old_a but_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o it_o semith_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o institution_n of_o honorius_a himselff_n who_o die_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1226._o his_o word_n in_o the_o say_v decretal_a be_v thes_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o through_o the_o small_a care_n of_o the_o priste_n god_n anger_n shall_v not_o be_v more_o grevos_o send_v we_o do_v straite_o command_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o thanksgeve_a be_v by_o the_o preste_n place_v in_o a_o singular_a place_n clean_a and_o lock_v and_o keep_v devowt_o and_o faithful_o but_o let_v the_o press_v very_o offten_o teach_v his_o peple_n that_o when_o the_o healtful_a host_n be_v lifft_v up_o on_o high_a in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o reverent_o bow_v they_o seluis_fw-la do_v the_o same_o when_o the_o priest_n bear_v it_o to_o the_o sick_a here_o honorius_n command_v that_o the_o peple_n shall_v bow_v they_o seluis_fw-la to_o the_o host_n and_o do_v not_o say_v than_o express_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o worship_v it_o he_o say_v only_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o bow_v they_o seluis_fw-la and_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o this_o his_o talk_n either_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o institutor_n of_o that_o thing_n or_o else_o that_o this_o bow_n to_o the_o sacrament_n begin_v not_o long_o affter_o he_o for_o iff_a the_o use_n have_v be_v old_a it_o have_v not_o need_v to_o make_v so_o straight_o a_o commandment_n to_o keep_v it_o for_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o custon_n and_o use_n be_v to_o do_v be_v do_v withowt_n commandment_n and_o whithowt_n doubt_n the_o sane_a honorius_n iff_o such_o a_o custme_n have_v be_v before_o he_o he_o will_v have_v allege_v either_o which_o have_v be_v the_o beginer_n or_o at_o the_o least_o the_o custon_n itself_o and_o he_o of_o himself_o will_v not_o so_o have_v speak_v as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o defender_n of_o tbe_n mass_n will_v say_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v worship_v where_o he_o be_v he_o be_v in_o that_o host_n wherefore_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o same_o i_o answer_v that_o worship_v be_v a_o deed_n of_o faith_n faith_n be_v not_o but_o by_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n let_v they_o show_v one_o jote_n if_o they_o can_v do_v it_o by_o god_n word_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n bodily_a we_o do_v worship_n christ_n in_o heaven_n because_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n clear_o that_o he_o be_v ascend_v in_o to_o heaven_n and_o there_o abide_v and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 3._o luke_n 24._o mark_v 16._o act._n 13._o ephes_n 4._o act_n 3._o as_o it_o be_v writton_n in_o luke_fw-mi and_o mark_v in_o thactis_n of_o thapostle_n and_o to_o thephesian_n who_o do_v asserten_a we_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o that_o host_n and_o in_o that_o cup_n first_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o the_o press_v have_v consecrate_v have_v not_o perceive_v the_o word_n furthermore_o he_o may_v have_v say_v the_o word_n and_o yet_o the_o consecration_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v because_o that_o either_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v the_o intent_n or_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o thing_n the_o consecration_n require_v as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentencis_fw-la say_v i_o speak_v now_o affter_o their_o opinion_n but_o of_o this_o thing_n we_o will_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o sacrament_n now_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o dispute_v because_o i_o shall_v be_v to_o long_o that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o they_o that_o worship_n christ_n in_o the_o host_n and_o in_o the_o cup_n that_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o samaritane_n you_o worship_v that_o that_o you_o know_v not_o furthermore_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o and_o also_o will_v say_v there_o have_v be_v no_o one_o or_o very_o few_o true_a priest_n from_o many_o a_o hundred_o year_n hitherto_o because_o those_o that_o have_v ordain_v they_o be_v not_o true_a bishop_n so_o than_o they_o do_v never_o consecrate_v here_o there_o may_v be_v say_v many_o thing_n but_o for_o shortness_n i_o will_v leave_v they_o another_o abuse_n be_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n be_v not_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v see_v they_o be_v word_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n
and_o live_v for_o ever_o to_o who_o be_v all_o rule_n honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o so_o be_v it_o the_o end_n a_o sermon_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o thancke_n geve_v the_o which_o declare_v whether_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o bodily_a in_o the_o same_o or_o no._n i_o can_n not_o say_v how_o much_o mirth_n and_o yoie_n be_v in_o my_o hart_n when_o i_o see_v in_o this_o our_o age_n that_o there_o be_v kindele_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o the_o holy_a desire_n to_o understand_v god_n thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o inestimable_a and_o the_o incomprehensible_a treasure_n hide_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o knowledge_n pass_v every_o other_o knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n and_o do_v so_o far_o excel_v 3._o philip._n 3._o that_o paul_n thapostel_n think_v every_o other_o thing_n loss_n and_o worthy_a the_o throw_v away_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o geve_v this_o desire_n to_o know_v christ_n to_o all_o man_n but_o to_o his_o own_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o elect_a only_o the_o which_o he_o have_v before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n forepoint_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o his_o praise_n and_o glory_n 1._o ephes_n 1._o of_o the_o other_o side_n not_o with_o stand_v i_o can_v not_o but_o be_v sorry_a see_v in_o thes_n same_o time_n when_o the_o gospel_n that_o have_v be_v hide_v so_o many_o world_n past_a be_v by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n late_o come_v forth_o to_o light_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o thes_n thing_n that_o god_n have_v institute_v to_o keep_v agreement_n and_o peace_n among_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o satan_n the_o enemy_n go_v abowt_n with_o the_o self_n same_o instrument_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n to_o make_v war_n against_o christ_n set_v dissension_n make_v schism_n and_o sow_v debate_n among_o christian_n not_o only_o among_o the_o people_n and_o common_a sort_n but_o among_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v light_n glass_n and_o example_n of_o agreement_n to_o who_o belong_v to_o teach_v other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v among_o the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n but_o this_o dear_a brother_n ought_v not_o to_o offend_v you_o nor_o to_o remove_v you_o from_o your_o holy_a purpose_n that_o you_o have_v in_o christ_n but_o rather_o to_o confirm_v you_o in_o faith_n and_o to_o kindle_v you_o to_o make_v a_o gretter_n entry_n in_o to_o the_o religion_n and_o way_n of_o god_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o god_n do_v suffer_v such_o striffes_n and_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n and_o of_o the_o true_a bilever_n first_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o his_o 11_o 1._o corinh_v 11_o who_o abide_v constant_a and_o stout_a may_v be_v manifest_a when_o other_o that_o have_v not_o a_o true_a growndwork_n but_o a_o feign_a and_o vain_a faith_n do_v fall_n and_o fail_v furthermore_o also_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o when_o we_o see_v such_o disorder_n we_o shall_v not_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o man_n the_o which_o may_v all_o err_v but_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o god_n word_n the_o which_o only_o can_v not_o deceive_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v indevor_n ourselves_o with_o all_o diligens_fw-la and_o care_n to_o understand_v it_o and_o that_o we_o ourselves_o shall_v look_v in_o the_o scripture_n whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o 〈◊〉_d as_o we_o may_v read_v of_o those_o that_o hard_a paul_n preac●●●…n_v the_o city_n of_o berrhoe_n in_o macedony_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o in_o thactis_fw-la of_o thapostel_n 17._o act._n 17._o the_o which_o when_o they_o hard_a paul_n sermon_n they_o look_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o as_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d ●…o_o and_o to_o be_v short_a to_o the_o intent_n that_o we_o shall_v prai_fw-la unto_fw-la god_n that_o he_o will_v geve_v we_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o same_o because_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o any_o man_n way_n but_o by_o god_n disclose_v 2._o 2._o pet._n 1._o 1._o cho._n 2._o now_o to_o return_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o strife_n that_o be_v of_o the_o sacrament_n some_o say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n consecrate_v in_o remembrans_fw-la of_o his_o death_n be_v contain_v his_o very_a body_n and_o his_o very_a blood_n and_o that_o there_o we_o have_v real_o and_o bodily_a all_o and_o hole_n christ_n as_o great_a and_o as_o thick_a as_o he_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n other_o some_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o there_o but_o there_o be_v only_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n as_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n give_v for_o our_o redemption_n and_o this_o controversy_n and_o strife_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n go_v forward_o that_o it_o have_v with_o many_o hinder_v the_o course_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n and_o it_o have_v make_v that_o christ_n enemy_n have_v take_v occasion_n and_o boldness_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a learning_n and_o god_n truth_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v although_o some_o have_v commit_v a_o great_a fawt_n in_o this_o thing_n strive_v ever_o bitter_o against_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n whereby_o they_o have_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n and_o have_v in_o some_o part_n spot_v their_o own_o glory_n lessen_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n that_o the_o world_n have_v of_o they_o we_o not_o withstand_v will_v comfort_v our_o seluis_fw-la with_o paul_n sa_v which_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o romans_n 8._o rom._n 8._o that_o to_o god_n elect_v every_o thing_n grow_v to_o good_a and_o although_o that_o present_o through_o such_o dissensyon_n we_o see_v among_o many_o nothing_o but_o disorder_n offence_n and_o evel_a yea_o hatred_n towards_o the_o gospel_n yet_o god_n for_o all_o that_o who_o know_v how_o to_o get_v order_n out_o of_o disorder_n and_o good_a out_o of_o evell_a will_v cause_v when_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o some_o great_a profit_n to_o grow_v out_o of_o it_o in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o present_a unknowen_a but_o in_o the_o end_n open_a thus_o we_o schuld_v believe_v and_o because_o i_o know_v that_o many_o desire_n to_o understand_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o true_a opinion_n of_o this_o sacrament_n i_o for_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o do_v they_o a_o pleasure_n and_o also_o a_o benefit_n will_v simple_o and_o with_o as_o much_o easiness_n as_o be_v possible_a set_v forth_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o think_v and_o hold_v for_o certain_a have_v be_v and_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o awncienty_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o and_o let_v no_o man_n marvel_v though_o i_o set_v the_o suttletye_n a_o side_n shall_v rather_o proceed_v with_o simpleness_n and_o familiarity_n and_o also_o though_o i_o shall_v rehearse_v one_o thing_n often_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o my_o mind_n be_v to_o be_v plain_o understand_v of_o all_o man_n and_o chief_o of_o the_o simple_a and_o unlerned_a and_o because_o the_o thing_n be_v of_o so_o great_a weight_n that_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o all_o diligens_fw-la to_o the_o intent_n that_o all_o man_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o understand_v it_o we_o by_o order_n and_o by_o part_n will_v consider_v it_o and_o first_o we_o will_v see_v how_o that_o there_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v diverse_a opinion_n of_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cause_n why_o and_o we_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o contrary_n talk_v and_o reason_n to_o the_o truth_n secondary_o when_o we_o have_v show_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_a opinion_n we_o will_v prove_v it_o with_o sure_a ground_n work_v and_o plain_a reason_n in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o will_v make_v it_o certain_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o old_a church_n in_o the_o four_o we_o will_v answer_v to_o the_o contrary_a saing_n and_o reason_n show_v they_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o of_o no_o weight_n in_o the_o five_o and_o last_o we_o will_v search_v out_o from_o whence_o the_o error_n of_o the_o false_a imagination_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o that_o sacrament_n be_v procee_v let_v we_o than_o in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n begin_v we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o differens_fw-la in_o this_o matter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o some_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o some_o other_o say_v the_o contrary_a that_o be_v to_o
say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o there_o be_v the_o evel_a understanding_n of_o christ_n own_o word_n the_o which_o he_o speak_v when_o he_o institute_v the_o same_o sacrament_n for_o one_o opinion_n understand_v they_o after_o one_o sort_n and_o other_o after_o a_o neither_o so_o that_o the_o controversy_n and_o contraryetye_n of_o the_o opinyon_n be_v because_o they_o understand_v not_o christ_n word_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v understand_v 11._o matth._n 26._o marci_n 14._o luk._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o when_o christ_n do_v institute_v this_o sacrament_n he_o take_v first_o the_o bread_n and_o call_v it_o his_o body_n sa_v this_o be_v my_o body_n â–ª_o after_o he_o take_v the_o wine_n and_o call_v it_o his_o blood_n they_z of_o the_o first_o opinion_n say_v that_o see_v the_o word_n be_v christ_n in_o deed_n they_o can_v not_o be_v false_o see_v he_o have_v plain_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o christes_fw-fr body_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o for_o else_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o be_v true_a but_o fall_v which_o can_v not_o be_v for_o somoch_v as_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a troth_n can_v not_o say_v a_o untrouth_n he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v his_o blood_n there_o for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o and_o in_o this_o opinion_n there_o be_v also_o ij_o diverse_a mind_n one_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o will_v that_o neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o both_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v and_o shall_v be_v cownt_v turnkynd_v that_o be_v to_o say_v transsubstantiate_v as_o they_o call_v it_o the_o which_o mean_v turn_v in_o to_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o bread_n in_o to_o chryste_n true_a and_o natural_a body_n the_o wine_n in_o to_o his_o blood_n and_o they_o call_v this_o turn_n or_o change_v transsubstantiacyon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v turn_v of_o the_o substance_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o there_o remain_v nothing_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n but_o the_o withcomme_v or_o accydente_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whytenes_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o rowndnes_n the_o taste_n the_o savour_n and_o so_o of_o the_o wine_n there_o remain_v the_o redness_n if_o it_o be_v red_a the_o swetenes_n or_o the_o sharpness_n according_a as_o the_o taste_n be_v and_o so_o of_o the_o other_o withcomme_v the_o which_o remain_v withowt_n any_o subject_n that_o be_v withowt_n any_o body_n to_o be_v in_o but_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v turn_v in_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o miracle_n because_o god_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o pryste_n and_o fryre_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o they_o have_v in_o such_o sort_n preach_v it_o that_o the_o world_n in_o time_n pass_v from_o certain_a honder_v year_n hitherto_o have_v beleve_v it_o and_o cownt_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o woo_v to_o he_o that_o have_v say_v the_o contrary_n for_o they_o will_v have_v condemn_v and_o burn_v he_o as_o a_o heretik_a and_o that_o because_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v take_v for_o god_n on_o earth_n for_o christ_n lefetenant_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v what_o so_o ever_o like_v he_o and_o every_o man_n be_v bring_v to_o his_o determination_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o so_o certain_z other_z of_o the_o first_o opinion_n too_o the_o which_o hold_v that_o christ_n be_v realli_n and_o bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v say_v that_o not_o witstand_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v whole_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n wholli_fw-la in_o the_o wine_n yet_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n abide_v in_o their_o substance_n as_o before_o and_o be_v not_o turn_v nor_o change_v in_o to_o a_o neither_o thing_n as_o the_o former_a opinion_n say_v and_o thes_n manner_n of_o man_n must_v needs_o say_v that_o at_o the_o least_o three_o very_a great_a miracle_n must_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o this_o sacrament_n the_o first_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v wholli_fw-la under_o that_o bread_n and_o under_o that_o wine_n as_o great_a and_o as_o thick_a as_o he_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o as_o presentli_a as_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n this_o be_v a_o great_a thing_n that_o a_o great_a body_n continew_v great_a shall_v be_v enclose_v in_o a_o little_a thing_n much_o less_o than_o the_o same_o bodi_fw-la the_o second_o miracle_n be_v that_o christ_n whole_a bodi_fw-la and_o his_o whole_a blood_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a bread_n and_o in_o the_o whole_a wine_n and_o in_o everi_n yea_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o reasonable_a soul_n that_o it_o be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a bodi_fw-la and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v x._o thousand_o part_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n whole_a christ_n and_o his_o whole_a blood_n shall_v be_v in_o everi_n of_o those_o divide_a part_n which_o be_v yea_o a_o great_a thing_n withowt_n comparison_n than_o that_o of_o the_o be_v of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o whole_a bodi_fw-la and_o in_o everi_n part_n of_o the_o bodi_fw-la for_o although_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o everi_n part_n of_o the_o bodi_fw-la while_o that_o the_o part_n abide_v yoin_v together_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o bodi_fw-la when_o they_o be_v separate_v for_o when_o one_o part_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o same_o but_o christ_n bodi_fw-la and_o blood_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n be_v in_o all_o the_o partis_fw-la of_o the_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o wine_n when_o they_o be_v yoin_v to_o gether_o and_o when_o they_o be_v divide_v or_o sunder_v the_o three_o miracle_n be_v that_o the_o same_o body_n and_o the_o same_o blood_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n both_o at_o a_o time_n and_o be_v in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o france_n in_o spain_n in_o england_n in_o almainy_n in_o flanders_n in_o italy_n in_o the_o east_n in_o the_o west_n in_o this_o in_o that_o city_n in_o this_o in_o that_o church_n on_o this_o altar_n the_o tabernacle_n be_v a_o litle-closet_n wherein_o the_o sacrament_n be_v keep_v near_o the_o altar_n on_o that_o altar_n in_o this_o in_o that_o tabernale_a as_o they_o say_v yea_o and_o that_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o and_o fill_v every_o thing_n but_o it_o be_v behooveful_a for_o they_o that_o put_v or_o will_v have_v the_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o their_o transsubstantion_n to_o put_v beside_o thes_n three_o miracle_n other_o also_o and_o to_o make_v a_o better_a marcket_n of_o miracle_n than_o they_o that_o put_v it_o not_o yea_o a_o better_a market_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o god_n make_v to_o who_o notwithstond_v belong_v to_o make_v miracle_n who_o be_v not_o so_o liberal_a of_o mirakel_n as_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a ground_n worck_n of_o this_o first_o opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o bodi_fw-la show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n and_o therefore_o christ_n must_v be_v in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n for_o else_o he_o shall_v have_v speak_v false_o the_o which_o can_v not_o be_v they_o bring_v forth_o in_o deed_n other_o reason_n but_o they_o all_o do_v little_a avail_n as_o that_o same_o that_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o great_a a_o fawt_n to_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o unworthe_o as_o paul_n say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o ever_o eat_v that_o bread_n and_o drink_v that_o wine_n unworthyle_n he_o eat_v and_o drink_v judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v condemnation_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o there_o say_v they_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v condemnation_n to_o eat_v that_o bread_n and_o to_o drink_v that_o wine_n but_o the_o condemnation_n be_v to_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n very_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o and_o the_o same_o paul_n in_o the_o self_n same_o chapter_n do_v call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n the_o lord_n body_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o that_o bread_n and_o in_o that_o wine_n they_o of_o this_o opinion_n to_o my_o judgement_n do_v make_v no_o other_o reason_n that_o be_v any_o thing_n worth_a not_o withstand_v when_o
we_o shall_v have_v place_v the_o true_a opinion_n we_o will_v answer_v to_o this_o shewsom_a reason_n and_o with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v trifle_v and_o of_o no_o value_n the_o other_o opinion_n and_o mind_n abowt_v this_o matter_n be_v that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o in_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o real_o and_o bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v sign_n appoint_v to_o signify_v the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n how_o christ_n jesus_n have_v give_v both_o the_o one_o and_o other_o for_o our_o ransom_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o we_o shall_v keep_v in_o our_o rememberan_n so_o great_a a_o thing_n and_o mystery_n as_o he_o himself_o when_o he_o do_v institute_v the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o thapostle_n say_v 11._o matth._n 26._o marc._n 14._o luk._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o oft_o as_o you_o shall_v do_v this_o you_o shall_v do_v it_o in_o my_o rememberan_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_a opinion_n a_o greable_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a church_n and_o awncient_a teacher_n the_o which_o have_v not_o say_v as_o any_o one_o of_o the_o for_o say_v opinion_n say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v enclose_v in_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o much_o less_o as_o other_o opinion_n say_v the_o which_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v in_o to_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o only_o the_o withcomme_v of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o but_o have_v say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n remain_v and_o be_v sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n for_o to_o bring_v to_o our_o remembrans_fw-la the_o most_o great_a and_o high_a benefit_n that_o christ_n have_v wrought_v we_o die_v for_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o our_o redemption_n and_o the_o growndworke_n of_o this_o opinion_n be_v sure_a and_o of_o such_o sort_n steadfast_a that_o all_o the_o engine_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o throw_v they_o to_o the_o ground_n because_o they_o be_v ground_n wrought_v up_o on_o the_o sure_a rock_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o agree_v with_o god_n trowth_n and_o his_o word_n that_o abide_v for_o ever_o we_o do_v not_o intend_v now_o here_o to_o bring_v forth_o all_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n work_v with_o the_o which_o this_o opinion_n be_v prove_v for_o we_o shall_v then_o make_v a_o long_a treatyse_n and_o not_o a_o sermon_n to_o inform_v the_o ignorant_a and_o jongling_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n thing_n as_o we_o intend_v to_o do_v but_o we_o will_v only_o bring_v forth_o some_o few_o persuasion_n by_o the_o which_o it_o may_v be_v clere_o know_v that_o it_o be_v even_o so_o as_o we_o say_v first_o this_o opinion_n say_v reason_n the_o first_o reason_n that_o the_o definition_fw-la of_o the_o sacrament_n must_v needs_o show_v and_o make_v plain_a to_o we_o that_o the_o matter_n stand_v thus_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n remain_v and_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o real_o there_o in_o they_o for_o the_o definition_fw-la of_o a_o sacrament_n receive_v of_o all_o man_n and_o be_v send_v augustine_n a_o catholic_a doctor_n be_v this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n every_o man_n confess_v that_o the_o thanks_n geve_v be_v a_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v not_o neither_o but_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n if_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n it_o need_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n for_o to_o be_v sign_n shall_v be_v change_v in_o to_o other_o substance_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o the_o sign_n that_o they_o may_v be_v sign_n do_v not_o change_v any_o substan_n but_o only_o take_v a_o new_a signification_n and_o it_o be_v much_o less_o needful_a that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v real_o and_o bodily_a present_n in_o the_o same_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o represent_v by_o the_o sign_n shall_v be_v enclose_v or_o present_v in_o the_o same_o sign_n as_o by_o experiens_fw-la we_o may_v see_v in_o many_o sort_n of_o sign_n that_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a that_o the_o thing_n signify_v shall_v be_v either_o present_a or_o enclose_v in_o the_o sign_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o it_o be_v represent_v let_v we_o geve_v a_o example_n the_o emperor_n image_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o neither_o but_o a_o sign_n we_o will_v never_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n himself_o be_v in_o that_o image_n nor_o that_o that_o image_n be_v change_v in_o to_o the_o emperor_n parson_n for_o if_o he_o be_v present_a where_o his_o image_n be_v he_o need_v not_o to_o set_v up_o the_o image_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o image_n be_v therefore_o set_v up_o speak_v of_o the_o body_a thing_n in_o any_o place_n because_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v not_o there_o present_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v set_v up_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o it_o may_v represent_v it_o so_o will_v we_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o wine_n that_o christ_n have_v institute_v they_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v be_v representer_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o when_o we_o see_v they_o and_o use_v they_o for_o a_o sacrament_n as_o he_o have_v ordain_v we_o shall_v remember_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o our_o ransome_v and_o for_o to_o be_v sign_n affter_o this_o sort_n it_o need_v not_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v there_o bodily_a present_n and_o much_o less_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v in_o to_o other_o substance_n it_o suffice_v as_o we_o have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v sign_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o emperor_n image_n the_o reason_n stand_v in_o this_o that_o the_o thank_n geve_v or_o for_o to_o use_v paul_n word_n the_o lord_n supper_n be_v not_o neither_o but_o a_o sacrament_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o neither_o but_o a_o sign_n because_o by_o the_o definition_fw-la already_o give_v a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n the_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n itself_o nor_o be_v not_o change_v in_o to_o it_o but_o only_o do_v signify_v it_o therefore_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v in_o to_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n nor_o they_o be_v not_o enclose_v in_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o it_o suffice_v that_o they_o be_v true_o represent_v by_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n and_o though_o we_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n eand_v the_o wine_n be_v not_o neither_o but_o sign_n we_o mean_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o effect_n that_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n of_o the_o which_o the_o same_o sacrament_n be_v the_o mynistery_n do_v work_v in_o the_o believer_n that_o receive_v they_o for_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o true_a believer_n be_v as_o it_o be_v by_o certain_a sign_n and_o seal_n of_o god_n confirm_v in_o his_o promise_n and_o be_v assuer_v of_o god_n grace_n and_o of_o many_o benyfite_n which_o god_n do_v geve_v we_o through_o christ_n but_o we_o do_v only_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v body_n lythere_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o to_o work_v thes_n effectis_fw-la which_o we_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o verteu_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v work_n it_o suffice_v that_o they_o be_v sign_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o that_o end_n and_o it_o need_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v there_o bodily_a present_n nor_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v any_o change_n of_o the_o sustance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n 11._o the_o second_o reason_n luk._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o further_o this_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n in_o remembrans_fw-la as_o the_o word_n they_o self_n of_o the_o same_o insttution_n do_v witness_n sa_v do_v this_o in_o mi_fw-mi rememberan_n if_o it_o be_v so_o than_o that_o it_o be_v institute_v for_o remembrans_fw-la it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a there_o and_o much_o less_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v
the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n do_v noryssh_a and_o maintain_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n so_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n receive_v spiritual_o and_o through_o faith_n in_o to_o the_o mind_n do_v norissh_a and_o maintain_v we_o in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n christ_n jesus_n call_v his_o flessh_n very_o meat_n and_o his_o blood_n very_o drink_v but_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v not_o abide_v but_o the_o only_o withcomme_v shall_v remain_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v that_o liklihode_n and_o agreement_n which_o this_o sacrament_n require_v because_o that_o the_o only_o withcomme_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n withowt_n the_o substance_n can_v not_o norissh_v and_o when_o the_o dew_n agreement_n and_o likelihood_n be_v not_o there_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v true_a sign_n and_o consequent_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v true_a sacrament_n and_o here_o it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o they_o of_o this_o opinion_n destroy_v the_o sacrament_n make_v they_o not_o to_o be_v true_a but_o vain_a sign_n take_v from_o they_o the_o growndwork_n of_o their_o true_a meaning_n a_z neither_o reason_n be_v this_o reason_n the_o three_o reason_n if_o christ_n be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o shall_v be_v nothing_o profitable_a forsomuch_o as_o that_o the_o only_a spiritual_a eatinge_v of_o christ_n be_v that_o 6._o johan._n 6._o that_o be_v profitable_a as_o the_o same_o christ_n himself_o say_v to_o they_o that_o think_v when_o he_o say_v that_o his_o body_n be_v meat_n and_o his_o blood_n drink_v and_o that_o it_o be_v behooveful_a for_o the_o have_v of_o life_n to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n they_o think_v i_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o bodily_a eatinge_v and_o drink_v send_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o through_o the_o mouth_n in_o to_o the_o stomach_n as_o also_o they_o believe_v that_o hold_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v personalli_n and_o bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n what_o say_v christ_n to_o these_o manner_n of_o man_n the_o spirit_n be_v that_o which_o geve_v life_n the_o flesh_n help_v nothing_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o i_o say_v that_o you_o must_v eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o bluode_n i_o mean_v that_o you_o must_v eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o bluode_n spiritual_o and_o after_o this_o sort_n they_o geve_v life_n but_o my_o flesh_n eat_v and_o my_o blood_n drunken_a as_o you_o understand_v it_o do_v help_v nothing_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o geve_v of_o life_n that_o my_o flesh_n be_v eat_v and_o my_o blood_n be_v drunken_a spiritual_o and_o not_o fleshly_a christ_n be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n be_v drunken_a spiritual_o as_o he_o himself_o declare_v when_o man_n believe_v in_o he_o and_o augustine_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o say_a word_n say_v crede_fw-la et_fw-la manducasti_fw-la that_o be_v to_o sai_fw-mi believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v gevinge_v to_o understand_v that_o christ_n intent_n be_v when_o he_o say_v these_o word_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o that_o it_o be_v behoufull_a to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v behooveful_a to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o after_o this_o sort_n his_o body_n be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n be_v drunken_a and_o the_o text_n itself_o geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v true_a the_o which_o say_v first_o that_o the_o father_n will_n be_v that_o every_o one_o that_o beleve_v in_o christ_n shall_v have_v life_n everlaft_v and_o a_o few_o word_n he_o add_v very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o beleve_v in_o i_o have_v life_n everlaftinge_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v if_o you_o shall_v not_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a if_o thes_n word_n speak_v by_o christ_n be_v true_a as_o necessary_o they_o must_v be_v true_a because_o christ_n can_v tell_v a_o untruth_n it_o do_v necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o eatinge_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v none_o other_o but_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o the_o eatinge_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o the_o beleve_v in_o he_o be_v thing_n so_o join_v to_o gether_o that_o they_o can_v be_v separate_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o the_o reason_n be_v this_o becauce_n that_o if_o these_o word_n be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o sentence_n or_o else_o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v separate_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o one_o may_v be_v true_a without_o the_o other_o we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v and_o have_v the_o life_n everlasting_a without_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n the_o which_o be_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n who_o say_v that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v life_n that_o eat_v not_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v not_o his_o blood_n or_o else_o we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v not_o belevinge_v in_o christ_n this_o be_v clear_a because_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o that_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o man_n be_v save_v by_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n when_o as_o this_o eat_n and_o drink_v be_v not_o the_o same_o that_o belevinge_v be_v or_o else_o that_o they_o may_v be_v separate_v that_o be_v to_o sai_o that_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v shall_v be_v without_o the_o beleve_a a_o man_n then_o shall_v have_v life_n everlasting_a without_o beleve_v in_o christ_n the_o which_o likewise_o be_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n who_o will_v that_o he_o that_o bebeleve_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o he_o that_o beleve_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v see_v then_o that_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o these_o two_o sainge_n be_v true_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o that_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o he_o that_o do_v not_o this_o can_v not_o have_v it_o and_o this_o other_o also_o be_v true_a that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o beleve_v in_o christ_n have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o he_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v can_v have_v it_o it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o to_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v be_v one self_o thing_n or_o else_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o same_o at_o the_o least_o that_o they_o can_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n be_v separate_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o one_o to_o be_v without_o the_o other_o i_o have_v make_v this_o long_a discourse_n to_o make_v man_n understand_v that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o bodily_a eatinge_v and_o drink_v and_o much_o less_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o of_o the_o only_a spiritual_a eatinge_v and_o drink_v and_o they_o that_o allege_v they_o of_o the_o body_n or_o else_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eat_n or_o drink_v do_v allege_v they_o out_o of_o the_o purpose_n further_o also_o to_o make_v man_n know_v the_o chief_a purpose_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o that_o although_o christ_n be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o shall_v help_v nothing_o because_o that_o the_o fleshly_a eat_n after_o what_o so_o eversorte_v it_o shall_v be_v do_v do_v nothing_o profit_n to_o the_o witness_v of_o christ_n see_v the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v only_o be_v that_o which_o geve_v life_n and_o if_o any_o will_v answer_v and_o say_v that_o when_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n do_v help_v nothing_o that_o he_o do_v mean_a that_o it_o do_v help_v nothing_o when_o it_o be_v eat_v as_o they_o do_v understand_v it_o to_o who_o christ_n speak_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o capernait_n the_o which_o think_v that_o he_o do_v mean_a to_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n as_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o shambles_n be_v eat_v and_o drink_v his_o blood_n as_o wine_n and_o water_n be_v drink_v but_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v eat_v after_o such_o a_o certene_a sort_n as_o he_o be_v not_o scene_n nor_o perceavid_n no_o nor_o chew_v because_o he_o be_v in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n undivideable_o nor_o his_o flesh_n be_v not_o eat_v nor_o blood_a drunken_a for_o to_o nourish_v the_o body_n as_o other_o bodelie_a meat_n but_o to_o norishe_v the_o soul_n
and_o therefore_o christ_n reprovid_v the_o capernaty_n because_o they_o understode_v he_o evel_n favored_o and_o not_o as_o he_o will_v be_v understand_v this_o answer_n be_v nothing_o for_o when_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n help_v nothing_o but_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o which_o geve_v life_n he_o mean_v that_o the_o only_a spiritual_a eat_v the_o which_o be_v do_v with_o the_o heart_n and_o with_o the_o mind_n through_o belefe_v be_v that_o which_o help_v but_o the_o bodily_a and_o fleshly_a eat_n help_v nothing_o after_o what_o so_o ever_o sort_v it_o shall_v be_v do_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o though_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o eat_v in_o piece_n and_o part_n orel_n chaw_v as_o other_o flesh_n be_v chaw_v and_o eat_v as_o the_o capernaite_n do_v understand_v it_o yet_o not_o with_o stand_a after_o what_o so_o eaver_n sort_n he_o shall_v be_v eat_v by_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o part_n or_o whole_a as_o they_o of_o the_o first_o opinion_n believe_v the_o which_o will_v that_o christ_n great_a and_o thick_a as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v whole_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o that_o little_a host_n as_o they_o call_v it_o this_o be_v a_o fleshly_a and_o bodily_a eat_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o a_o thing_n be_v no_o whit_n less_o bodily_a eat_v when_o it_o be_v put_v all_o hole_n into_o the_o mouth_n and_o send_v into_o the_o stomach_n as_o jonas_n be_v whole_o swallow_a by_o the_o whale_n or_o as_o the_o pill_n that_o be_v receavid_n whole_a it_o be_v no_o whitlesse_a bodily_a eat_a i_o say_v they_o if_o it_o be_v eat_v by_o part_n i_o therefore_o by_o the_o bodily_a eat_n do_v mean_a that_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o spirit_n this_o of_o the_o which_o they_o speak_v that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o mouth_n be_v not_o with_o the_o mind_n therefore_o it_o be_v bodily_a if_o it_o be_v bodelie_o it_o help_v nothing_o i_o will_v say_v to_o be_v short_a that_o if_o christ_n be_v bodily_a present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o his_o be_v there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o ꝓfitable_a at_o all_o although_o that_o we_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o bluode_n a_o thousand_o time_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n and_o drink_v only_o the_o which_o be_v by_o faith_n belevinge_v true_o in_o he_o be_v that_o which_o help_v the_o bodily_a and_o fleshly_a eat_n and_o drink_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o mouth_n help_v nothing_o they_z then_o do_v little_a honour_n to_o christ_n that_o will_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o they_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v make_v unprofitable_a thing_n the_o which_o we_o may_v not_o think_v much_o less_o speak_v but_o because_o we_o have_v say_v that_o the_o only_a spiritual_a eat_n and_o drink_v christ_n flesh_n and_o bluode_n be_v that_o which_o help_v and_o not_o the_o bodily_a some_o man_n may_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n then_o do_v christ_n institute_v the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v and_o drink_v the_o which_o be_v not_o spiritual_a but_o bodily_a etc._n etc._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v therefore_o institute_v by_o christ_n because_o that_o although_o the_o eatinge_v and_o drink_v of_o it_o be_v not_o spiritual_a but_o bodily_a yet_o not_o with_o stand_v it_o serve_v and_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n and_o drink_v the_o which_o be_v by_o faith_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n do_v confirm_v we_o in_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n not_o that_o it_o shall_v already_o have_v this_o power_n of_o itself_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o instrument_n or_o else_o a_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n join_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n with_o which_o instrument_n and_o ministry_n the_o same_o spirit_n work_v in_o we_o and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n as_o holy_a sign_n be_v there_o for_o we_o as_o we_o will_v better_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o last_o reason_n and_o when_o i_o say_v that_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n and_o drink_v only_o be_v profitable_a and_o not_o the_o bodelie_o i_o mean_v of_o the_o bodily_a eat_n of_o the_o same_o true_a body_n and_o of_o the_o bodily_a drink_n of_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o christ_n put_v into_o the_o mouth_n as_o the_o capernaite_n do_v mean_a and_o as_o they_o affirm_v the_o which_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o sacramental_a eat_v the_o which_o without_o doubt_n be_v profitable_a when_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o spiritual_a and_o when_o it_o be_v not_o join_v it_o be_v not_o only_o not_o profitable_a but_o it_o be_v damnable_a as_o saint_n paul_n say_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n because_o it_o be_v unworthelie_o receive_v 11._o 1._o corin._n 11._o if_o christ_n then_o be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v much_o less_o change_v but_o do_v both_o abide_v in_o substance_n as_o be_v fore_o reason_n the_o four_o reason_n another_o reason_n be_v this_o and_o it_o be_v particular_o against_o the_o opinion_n of_o transsubstanciation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o they_o that_o will_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o jesu_n christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v remain_v no_o more_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n but_o the_o withcomme_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o white_a colour_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o colour_n of_o the_o wine_n the_o taste_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o roundness_n or_o other_o form_n of_o the_o same_o bread_n and_o so_o we_o will_v say_v of_o the_o other_o withcomme_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o moystines_n dryness_n heat_n and_o can_v this_o opinion_n can_v stand_v with_o those_o effect_n that_o we_o may_v manifest_o see_v and_o that_o experience_n itself_o do_v show_v us._n first_o the_o sacrament_n be_v able_a to_o norishe_v bodelie_o wherefore_o if_o there_o be_v one_o that_o shall_v eat_v a_o quantity_n of_o host_n and_o wine_n consecrate_v they_o will_v norishe_v as_o other_o bread_n and_o wine_n not_o consecrate_v further_o it_o be_v seen_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o sacrament_n sometime_o be_v corrupt_v and_o worm_n be_v engender_v in_o it_o as_o in_o other_o bread_n and_o wine_n not_o consecrate_v but_o how_o can_v these_o effect_n be_v wrought_v this_o opinion_n stand_a of_o the_o chaunginge_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o only_o withcomme_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n remain_v how_o can_v the_o withcomme_v nourish_v without_o the_o substance_n what_o be_v to_o norishe_v but_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o substance_n that_o eat_v and_o drink_v it_o seur_o the_o withcomme_v without_o substance_n can_v norishe_v because_o that_o nourish_a mean_v change_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o meat_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n nourish_v we_o can_v now_o say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v that_o which_o shall_v norishe_v because_o that_o the_o thing_n that_o nourish_v be_v as_o we_o have_v say_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o hin_n that_o receave_v it_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n ●●ing_n immortal_a and_o uncorruptible_a be_v not_o receiveable_a of_o such_o change_n like_a as_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o norishement_n we_o will_v say_v of_o the_o ingenderinge_v the_o which_o we_o may_v see_v be_v make_v in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o the_o worm_n be_v engender_v how_o can_v a_o substance_n be_v engender_v of_o the_o only_o withcomme_v here_o thy_o of_o this_o opinion_n be_v entangle_v and_o they_o answer_v some_o after_o one_o sort_n and_o some_o after_o another_o innocentius_n the_o third_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o mass_n say_v that_o even_o as_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v miraculous_o turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o withcomme_v only_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n remaininge_n so_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o which_o the_o worm_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v engender_v may_v miraculous_o return_v egidius_n romanus_n in_o his_o theorem_n of_o christ_n body_n say_v that_o such_o a_o engenderinge_v be_v not_o miraculous_a but_o natural_a for_o
he_o shall_v not_o have_v nether_a the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o of_o these_o two_o proꝑty_n it_o follow_v i_o say_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o have_v a_o true_a body_n yea_o no_o body_n because_o that_o his_o body_n be_v it_o where_o it_o will_v and_o as_o it_o will_v it_o can_v be_v separatid_v from_o these_o two_o property_n to_o a_o body_n most_o natural_a and_o inseparable_a according_a to_o austen_n and_o the_o troth_n here_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v true_a speak_v natural_o that_o these_o two_o condition_n and_o property_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o body_n but_o speak_v supernatural_o and_o by_o miracle_n they_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n as_o in_o effectt_n they_o be_v separate_v from_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o substantial_a property_n be_v never_o change_v by_o miracle_n let_v they_o find_v that_o god_n ever_o do_v it_o let_v they_o geve_v i_o one_o only_a example_n we_o know_v that_o god_n be_v almighty_a and_o there_o be_v no_o manner_n thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v impossible_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o marye_n but_o who_o know_v that_o this_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v now_o to_o dispute_v this_o thing_n i_o desire_n they_o that_o they_o will_v geve_v some_o other_o example_n but_o they_o will_v neaver_o do_v it_o further_o i_o say_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o god_n do_v these_o miracle_n this_o be_v no_o good_a reason_n god_n can_v do_v it_o therefore_o he_o have_v do_v it_o how_o many_o thing_n can_v god_n do_v that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v god_n can_v have_v send_v more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n for_o to_o delyver_v christ_n out_o of_o the_o jewce_n hand_n 26._o math._n 26._o as_o he_o himself_o do_v witness_v in_o s._n mat._n and_o yet_o he_o send_v they_o not_o and_o how_o many_o other_o thing_n may_v we_o allege_v if_o we_o will_v that_o god_n can_v do_v and_o yet_o he_o do_v they_o not_o they_o must_v prove_v then_o that_o god_n do_v these_o miracle_n by_o christ_n sainge_n nor_o by_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v prove_v it_o except_o that_o they_o will_v allege_v that_o christ_n have_v say_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n but_o this_o be_v a_o trifle_a proof_n for_o somuch_o that_o christ_n mean_v not_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n to_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v within_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n but_o mean_v to_o say_v that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v sign_n and_o a_o remembraunce_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o plain_o we_o will_v show_v hereafter_o peradventure_o they_o will_v say_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n there_o need_v no_o profess_v but_o man_n must_v stand_v to_o the_o letter_n this_o thing_n be_v of_o faith_n therefore_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n i_o say_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v stand_v to_o god_n word_n with_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o it_o and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n nor_o we_o must_v not_o geve_v they_o other_o and_o strange_a sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a in_o the_o host_n and_o in_o the_o cup_n as_o it_o be_v say_v but_o it_o be_v that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v and_o will_v better_o say_v in_o the_o talk_n that_o follow_v where_o we_o will_v declare_v the_o manner_n of_o sacramental_a speech_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v short_a that_o we_o may_v end_v now_o at_o length_n this_o reasoninge_a i_o say_v that_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o bluode_n in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v diminish_v the_o troth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n true_a body_n and_o true_a bluode_n and_o it_o make_v he_o to_o have_v in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o fantastical_a body_n and_o much_o more_o fantastical_a than_o martiane_n and_o manicheus_fw-la who_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o christ_n and_o appoint_v he_o notrew_v and_o natural_a body_n but_o a_o fantastical_a and_o imaginable_a orel_n a_o seem_a body_n they_o say_v thing_n less_o strive_v against_o nature_n then_o this_o opinion_n because_o they_o do_v neaver_o divide_v christ_n body_n nor_o speak_v of_o he_o thing_n so_o unimaginable_a as_o this_o opinion_n do_v nor_o they_o neaver_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o one_o this_o opinion_n make_v he_o to_o be_v in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n in_o infinite_a place_n nor_o they_o neaver_o say_v that_o a_o great_a body_n be_v contain_v in_o so_o little_a a_o thing_n as_o these_o man_n say_v and_o so_o we_o will_v say_v of_o the_o other_o so_o many_o imagination_n which_o the_o foresaid_a opinion_n place_v and_o yet_o though_o manicheus_fw-la and_o martian_a do_v say_v these_o or_o like_a thing_n as_o they_o say_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v less_o in_o convenient_a seinge_v they_o do_v appoint_v he_o a_o fantastic_a and_o a_o semeable_a body_n but_o this_o opinion_n affirm_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a and_o a_o natural_a body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v yet_o speak_v such_o thing_n of_o he_o as_o nether_a can_v be_v in_o deed_n nor_o be_v not_o imaginable_a and_o be_v without_o all_o reason_n without_o also_o god_n word_n and_o more_o reproweable_a as_o to_o this_o they_o the_o fore_n say_v opinion_n i_o mean_v of_o manicheus_fw-la and_o martion_n and_o without_o doubt_n they_o speak_v thing_n disagree_v to_o themselves_o furthermore_o if_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n what_o mean_v it_o that_o the_o old_a church_n when_o shall_v make_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v singe_v the_o preface_n as_o it_o be_v call_v sur_fw-fr sum_n corda_n that_o be_v to_o say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n on_o high_a and_o also_o these_o word_n be_v now_o say_v in_o all_o the_o mass_n suerly_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v our_o heart_n where_o christ_n and_o our_o treasour_n be_v as_o he_o himself_o in_o s._n math_n 5._o matth._n 5._o say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v where_o your_o treasoure_n shall_v be_v there_o will_n your_o heart_n be_v our_o treasoure_n ought_v to_o be_v where_o christ_n be_v and_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n say_v 3._o coloss_n 3._o if_o you_o be_v rise_v again_o together_o with_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o leave_v the_o evell_a you_o have_v take_v the_o good_a and_o new_a life_n to_o the_o likeness_n of_o christ_n who_o leave_v the_o corruptible_a and_o mortal_a life_n have_v take_v the_o incorruptible_a immortal_a and_o glorious_a life_n seek_v thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n be_v who_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n seek_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o and_o not_o the_o earthly_a thing_n gevinge_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o see_v christ_n jesus_n be_v our_o treasour_n and_o all_o our_o wealth_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v our_o heart_n be_v he_o be_v if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v our_o heart_n where_o christ_n be_v let_v he_o be_v in_o what_o so_o ever_o place_v he_o will_v what_o need_v it_o that_o the_o old_a church_n shall_v admonish_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v lift_v up_o there_o heart_n on_o high_a that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o heaven_n if_o by_o and_o by_o after_o a_o few_o word_n he_o shall_v have_v descend_v into_o bread_n and_o into_o wine_n what_o need_v we_o to_o seek_v christ_n so_o far_o of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o heaven_n if_o he_o be_v so_o near_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n this_o sainge_a sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la sure_o geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o old_a church_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v bodelie_o in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o they_o have_v beleve_v it_o they_o will_v neaver_o have_v say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n on_o high_a but_o they_o will_v have_v say_v be_v you_o attent_a o_fw-mi you_o faithful_a for_o by_o and_o by_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n shall_v be_v here_o present_a in_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v direct_v your_o mind_n to_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v consecrate_v because_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v their_o bodily_a but_o they_o say_v not_o after_o this_o sort_n they_o have_v in_o deed_n say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n on_o high_a geve_v to_o understand_v that_o they_o beleve_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n reason_n the_o nine_o reason_n the_o nine_o reason_n be_v this_o and_o it_o gainsai_v the_o
these_o as_o those_o except_o luke_o and_o paul_n do_v tell_v a_o lie_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o that_o cup_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o else_o at_o the_o least_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v in_o that_o cup_n the_o which_o be_v not_o true_a for_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o the_o cup_n nor_o be_v not_o in_o it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n or_o disposition_n the_o which_o god_n make_v to_o leave_v to_o his_o elect_a child_n the_o ever_o last_a wealth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o forgevenes_n of_o sin_n the_o fre_v from_o all_o evell_a the_o everlasting_a life_n and_o the_o possession_n of_o every_o good_a thing_n if_o thes_n be_v inconvenience_n as_o we_o may_v see_v they_o their_o opinion_n be_v false_a the_o last_o reason_n be_v this_o reason_n the_o ten_o reason_n christ_n mai_fw-gr be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n drink_v only_o two_o way_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_o and_o sacramental_o the_o which_o sacramental_a eat_n therefore_o as_o we_o have_v say_v serve_v and_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n i_o do_v not_o find_v after_o what_o other_o sort_n except_o these_o two_o we_o may_v eat_v christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n but_o to_o eat_v christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n after_o thes_n two_o sort_n we_o need_n not_o to_o put_v he_o real_o into_o the_o mouth_n neither_o his_o body_n nor_o his_o blood_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christ_n shall_v be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n may_v be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n drink_v after_o these_o two_o sort_n though_o that_o he_o real_o in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o prove_v it_o thus_o first_o to_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o his_o bluode_n spiritual_o we_o need_n not_o to_o receive_v he_o by_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n it_o suffice_v to_o receive_v he_o by_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o we_o prove_v before_o in_o the_o three_o reason_n nor_o it_o need_v not_o i_o say_v for_o to_o eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o bluode_n after_o this_o sort_n that_o we_o shall_v put_v either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o into_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n this_o be_v plain_a because_o that_o such_o eat_n and_o drink_v be_v do_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o with_o the_o mind_n and_o this_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o deny_v that_o also_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o receive_v he_o sacramental_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o say_v to_o the_o cor._n that_o the_o hebrue_n be_v he_o people_n be_v baptize_v aswell_o they_o 10_o 1_o corin._n 10_o as_o we_o although_o under_o other_o sign_n than_o we_o because_o that_o we_o be_v baptize_v with_o water_n and_o that_o people_n say_v paul_n be_v baptize_v with_o the_o cloud_n dni_fw-fr with_o the_o sea_n pass_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o read_v sea_n and_o that_o cloud_n that_o cover_v they_o and_o the_o red_a sea_n through_o the_o midst_n whereof_o they_o all_o pass_v be_v to_o they_o baptisinge_v where_o we_o may_v note_v that_o according_a to_o paul_n not_o only_o they_o of_o full_a age_n be_v baptize_v but_o the_o child_n also_o because_o that_o all_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n i_o desire_v to_o say_v these_o few_o word_n for_o their_o sake_n that_o be_v seduce_v by_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o the_o anabaptisticall_a error_n who_o be_v lead_v about_o by_o sathan_n do_v deny_v the_o baptism_n of_o child_n if_o the_o hebrew_n child_n be_v baptize_v in_o token_n that_o they_o be_v also_o of_o god_n people_n for_o what_o cause_n shall_v not_o now_o our_o child_n be_v baptize_v be_v no_o less_o of_o god_n people_n they_o they_o and_o be_v no_o less_o redeem_v by_o christ_n they_o they_o of_o full_a age_n this_o i_o desire_v to_o say_v by_o the_o way_n after_o paul_n add_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o all_o do_v eat_v the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a food_n and_o drink_v all_o the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a drink_n and_o he_o call_v that_o spiritual_a meat_n or_o else_o food_n whether_o you_o will_v call_v it_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o chief_o the_o manna_n the_o which_o meat_n they_o all_o do_v eat_v and_o he_o call_v the_o spiritual_a drink_n that_o water_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n and_o he_o add_v that_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v signify_v christ_n that_o spiritual_a food_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o the_o manna_n do_v also_o signify_v christ_n as_o the_o water_n do_v betoken_v he_o although_o paul_n do_v not_o express_o speak_v it_o and_o to_o be_v short_a he_o mean_v that_o the_o hebrueish_a people_n do_v aswell_o communicate_v with_o those_o sign_n as_o we_o do_v that_o eat_v the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o sacramental_a wine_n and_o paul_n mean_v in_o his_o tongue_n that_o all_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v christ_n sacramental_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o to_o eat_v a_o thing_n sacramental_o be_v none_o other_o but_o to_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o same_o well_o now_o if_o that_o people_n do_v eat_v christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n sacramental_o when_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o the_o manna_n and_o drink_v that_o water_n that_o run_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v to_o we_o and_o do_v signify_v the_o same_o as_o paul_n say_v and_o austen_n expound_v it_o in_o the_o 45._o treatyse_n upon_o john_n sa_v that_o those_o sacrament_n do_v signify_v the_o self_n same_o that_o we_o do_v although_o after_o a_o other_o sort_n and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v they_o do_v not_o eat_v christ_n body_n nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n real_o put_v they_o in_o to_o the_o mouth_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o we_o mai_fw-gr not_o also_o eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n sacramental_o without_o eat_v or_o drink_v he_o real_o and_o bodily_a forso_fw-la much_o as_o that_o to_o eat_v or_o drink_n christ_n sacramental_o be_v none_o other_o but_o to_o receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n his_o sacrament_n and_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a that_o the_o thing_n signify_v shall_v be_v in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o much_o less_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v any_o turn_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o sai_o that_o it_o shall_v signify_v it_o according_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n which_o say_v sacramentum_fw-la est_fw-la sacrae_fw-la rei_fw-la signum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o hebrew_v sacrament_n because_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o either_o bear_v or_o incarnate_v and_o how_o can_v his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v in_o those_o sacrament_n see_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o yet_o and_o yet_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a drink_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n spiritual_o certain_z expound_v paul_n text_n of_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o faith_n but_o because_o that_o all_o do_v not_o eat_v and_o drink_v spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o as_o paul_n affirm_v in_o the_o text_n be_v unbelever_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o all_o do_v eat_v the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a drink_n i_o have_v therefore_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o which_o all_o aswell_o believer_n as_o unbelever_n do_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o not_o of_o the_o spiritual_a that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o faith_n the_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o believer_v only_o and_o though_o paul_n call_v that_o meat_n and_o drink_v spiritual_a yet_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v spiritual_a in_o itself_o as_o that_o which_o be_v of_o faith_n be_v in_o deed_n spiritual_a but_o he_o call_v it_o spiritual_a as_o to_o the_o signification_n and_o as_o to_o the_o use_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o signify_v christ_n who_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o a_o holy_a thing_n as_o our_o sacrament_n may_v be_v call_v spiritual_a thing_n be_v cause_n they_o be_v appoint_v to_o spiritual_a
thing_n there_o be_v not_o withstand_v difference_n between_o those_o sacrament_n and_o we_o because_o that_o they_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o spiritual_a thing_n serve_v also_o for_o the_o bodily_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o present_a life_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o manna_n and_o the_o water_n be_v their_o daily_a meat_n and_o drink_n so_o that_o they_o have_v two_o use_n the_o one_o spiritual_a because_o it_o be_v to_o they_o a_o sacrament_n the_o other_o bodily_a the_o which_o serve_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o body_n our_o sacrament_n be_v not_o so_o the_o which_o be_v take_v only_o for_o the_o spiritual_a use_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o sacrament_n and_o not_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o body_n to_o conclude_v therefore_o i_o say_v that_o see_v christ_n can_v be_v eat_v nor_o drink_v but_o after_o one_o of_o these_o two_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n and_o then_o sacramental_o also_o and_o after_o these_o two_o sort_n christ_n may_v be_v receive_v though_o he_o be_v not_o real_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o profitable_a and_o much_o less_o necessary_a to_o affirm_v such_o real_a be_v in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n they_o that_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o in_o that_o host_n and_o in_o that_o cup_n do_v not_o know_v what_o mean_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_n christ_n sacramental_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v sacramental_o as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v none_o other_o but_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o holy_a thing_n and_o do_v not_o mean_a to_o take_v bodily_a the_o self_n same_o thing_n that_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o sacrament_n i_o may_v if_o i_o will_v and_o do_v not_o fear_v to_o be_v tedious_a to_o the_o reader_n make_v dyvers_a other_o reason_n also_o but_o it_o need_v not_o and_o those_o that_o we_o have_v make_v do_v suffice_v but_o let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n that_o we_o have_v make_v no_o one_o reason_n to_o prove_v this_o our_o negative_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o there_o be_v not_o make_v any_o turn_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n nor_o that_o we_o have_v not_o allege_v any_o sa_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o not_o withstand_v god_n aid_v we_o we_o have_v sufficient_o do_v let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n i_o say_v that_o we_o have_v do_v no_o one_o of_o those_o thing_n yet_o they_o of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n shall_v not_o by_o this_o have_v have_v their_o purpose_n because_o that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o we_o to_o prove_v our_o negative_a but_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o prove_v there_o affirmative_a for_o everi_n one_o that_o affirm_v any_o sainge_n be_v bind_v if_o he_o speak_v reasonable_o to_o prove_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o already_o so_o plain_a that_o every_o man_n may_v see_v it_o he_o that_o deny_v be_v not_o bind_v to_o prove_v his_o negative_a it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o a_o man_n of_o what_o so_o ever_o authority_n he_o be_v for_o to_o be_v beleve_v to_o say_v it_o be_v so_o the_o matter_n stand_v thus_o but_o he_o must_v prove_v his_o affirmative_a sainge_n chief_o if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o weight_n and_o pertain_v to_o faith_n as_o this_o be_v nor_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o nether_a to_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v it_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o many_o false_a opinion_n be_v with_o wit_n with_o distinction_n with_o wrangelinge_n and_o intangelinge_n defend_v as_o though_o they_o be_v true_a we_o mai_fw-gr see_v this_o by_o experience_n in_o the_o school_n doctoures_fw-la and_o questionist_n for_o few_o or_o none_o of_o they_o do_v agree_v to_o gether_o but_o they_o be_v of_o contrary_a and_o d●…uers_a opinion_n and_o always_o every_o one_o of_o they_o defend_v his_o oune_n fantasy_n and_o they_o strive_v continual_o and_o it_o be_v neaver_o know_v who_o have_v the_o right_a and_o they_o confound_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n they_o lose_v the_o time_n and_o cause_v other_o also_o to_o lose_v it_o i_o desire_v then_o of_o these_o manner_n man_n that_o they_o will_v prove_v this_o their_o rule_n or_o opinion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n i_o desire_v that_o they_o will_v prove_v it_o i_o other_z by_z reason_n or_o such_o authority_n as_o i_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v this_o my_o request_n be_v just_a reasonable_a and_o honest_a by_o reason_n they_o can_v not_o prove_v it_o this_o be_v clear_a and_o themselves_o by_o agreement_n do_v confess_v it_o by_o authority_n how_o do_v they_o prove_v it_o they_o bring_v forth_o the_o old_a doctor_n they_o alle●…ge_v the_o determination_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o counsel_n the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n last_o of_o all_o they_o allege_v christ_n word_n when_o he_o do_v institute_v the_o supper_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n and_o christ_n sainge_n also_o in_o s._n john_n 6._o io._n 6._o that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n i_o be_o the_o lyvinge_a bread_n that_o be_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o eaver_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o shall_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o after_o true_o true_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o if_o you_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v not_o his_o bluode_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o further_o my_o flesh_n be_v very_o meat_n and_o my_o bluode_n be_v very_o drink_v these_o be_v the_o authority_n that_o they_o allege_v to_o the_o which_o authority_n i_o answer_v and_o first_o to_o those_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o for_o example_n of_o ireneus_fw-la tertulian_n cyprian_n origen_n hilary_n athanasius_n basill_n jonh_o chrisostom_n gregory_n nazianzene_n gregory_n nicene_n cyrill_n ambrose_n iherom_n augustine_n and_o such_o other_o holy_a father_n the_o which_o labour_v for_o christ_n church_n in_o write_v book_n expound_v the_o scripture_n disputinge_v against_o heretic_n preachinge_a and_o teachinge_a whereby_o they_o do_v in_o deed_n deserve_v to_o be_v honour_v for_o their_o lerninge_v and_o holiness_n but_o i_o say_v that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o of_o the_o other_o anucients_n be_v caver_n of_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o much_o less_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o in_o deed_n they_o have_v say_v the_o contrary_n and_o though_o sometime_o it_o seem_v that_o they_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v christ_n body_n and_o bluode_n yet_o this_o be_v for_o none_o other_o cause_n but_o that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o do_v call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o they_o as_o we_o often_o find_v that_o augustine_n do_v who_o very_o often_o have_v declare_v such_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o we_o will_v tell_v here_o after_o and_o let_v we_o admit_v also_o that_o all_o the_o old_a doctor_n have_v be_v of_o that_o opinion_n and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n will_v say_v it_o yet_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o believe_v they_o if_o they_o bring_v not_o forth_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o that_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n pertain_v to_o faith_n and_o faith_n be_v ground_n wrought_v only_o upon_o god_n word_n as_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o roman_n 10._o ro._n 10._o faith_n come_v of_o hear_v but_o hear_v be_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o do_v not_o say_v by_o the_o word_n of_o man_n the_o which_o may_v all_o err_v but_o he_o say_v it_o come_v of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v god_n word_n let_v they_o allege_v we_o in_o such_o thing_n the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o else_o not_o and_o if_o any_o will_v say_v and_o the_o scripture_n also_o be_v make_v by_o man_n therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v it_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v writ-told_a and_o make_v by_o the_o holy_a
ghost_n as_o peter_n say_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n 1._o 2._o pet._n 1._o and_o it_o be_v confirm_v with_o great_a sign_n and_o marvelous_a miracle_n nor_o no_o ●…ue_n of_o the_o father_n or_o old_a doctor_n do_v ●…aver_a desire_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v beleve_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o they_o all_o with_o one_o voice_n do_v say_v and_o chief_o saint_n augustine_n that_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n we_o shall_v so_o far_o believe_v they_o as_o be_v find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o none_o otherwise_o and_o they_o will_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o deny_v any_o man_n yea_o let_v they_o be_v of_o what_o so_o ever_o holiness_n learning_n and_o authority_n you_o will_v but_o not_o to_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n tell_v i_o who_o be_v he_o that_o will_v believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n although_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v tell_v he_o if_o it_o be_v not_o plain_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n who_o will_v believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n if_o god_n word_n have_v not_o tell_v it_o what_o can_v man_n know_v of_o such_o thing_n except_o so_o much_o as_o god_n oppen_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o scripture_n look_v upon_o austen_n in_o the_o 19_o epistle_n pistell_n the_o 19_o pistell_n where_o he_o say_v in_o sentence_n that_o he_o bear_v this_o honour_n towards_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o beleve_v seurly_a that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o have_v ●…rred_v but_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o may_v deny_v they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v their_o suing_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n pistell_n the_o 3._o pistell_n the_o very_a same_o in_o meaning_n he_o say_v in_o the_o hundred_o and_o eleven_o epistle_n write_v to_o fortunatianus_fw-la the_o bishop_n they_z all_o beside_o all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n in_o that_o he_o be_v m●…_n be_v only_o in_o heaven_n bodily_a 3._o in_o the_o se_fw-mi second_o book_n against_o the_o denatist_n cap._n 3._o let_v we_o say_v the_o same_o of_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o counsel_n that_o all_o may_v err_v austen_n in_o the_o second_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n say_v that_o the_o universal_a former_a counsel_n may_v be_v amend_v by_o they_o that_o follow_v if_o they_o may_v be_v amend_v sure_o they_o may_v err_v and_o so_o they_o that_o follow_v after_o they_o who_o doubt_v but_o they_o mai_fw-gr err_v aswell_o as_o they_o that_o go_v before_o and_o we_o by_o experience_n ma●…_n see_v that_o many_o counsel_n do_v err_v for_o one_o of_o they_o do_v gainsay_v a_o other_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o because_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v reverence_n to_o counsel_n when_o they_o be_v lawful_o gather_v together_o and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o when_o the_o determination_n that_o be_v make_v in_o they_o be_v accord_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o niece_n be_v against_o arrius_n the_o council_n of_o calcedone_n against_o eutiches_n and_o certain_a other_o old_a counsel_n the_o which_o have_v god_n word_n for_o their_o rule_n and_o these_o only_o be_v gather_v to_o gether_o in_o christ_n name_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o i_o say_v in_o deed_n that_o when_o they_o determine_v any_o manner_n of_o thing_n pertain_v to_o faith_n and_o do_v not_o stick_v to_o god_n word_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o obey_v such_o counsel_n nor_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o and_o in_o our_o day_n we_o have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o goodly_a determination_n that_o it_o make_v all_z at_o the_o pope_n good_a pleasure_n who_o the_o bishop_n can_v gainsay_v because_o they_o have_v all_o swear_v neaver_o to_o go_v against_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a what_o estimation_n shall_v man_n have_v of_o such_o counsel_n where_o no_o respect_n be_v have_v to_o god_n honour_n nor_o to_o his_o word_n and_o such_o as_o be_v gather_v together_o against_o christ_n for_o to_o quench_v he_o out_o and_o to_o establish_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v we_o allow_v such_o counsel_n this_o be_v a_o chief_a ground_n the_o faithful_a christian_a be_v not_o bind_v nor_o ought_v not_o in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o hole_n world_n together_o if_o they_o do_v not_o bring_v forth_o god_n word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o their_o witness_n well_o now_o they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o have_v god_n word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n word_n who_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n she_o wing_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n therefore_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o christ_n be_v whole_o in_o the_o host_n and_o in_o the_o wine_n further_o he_o say_v those_o word_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n above_o recite_v where_o he_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o this_o be_v not_o do_v except_o in_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o he_o be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o answer_v first_o to_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o i_o ask_v where_o in_o the_o scripture_n at_o any_o time_n be_v find_v that_o such_o a_o speech_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o bluode_n shall_v mean_v this_o be_v turn_v into_o my_o body_n and_o into_o my_o blood_n or_o else_o my_o body_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v in_o these_o sign_n i_o neaver_o find_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n therefore_o the_o fore_n say_v word_n have_v another_o meaning_n then_o that_o the_o which_o they_o geve_v they_o or_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n use_v that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n as_o before_o we_o have_v say_v and_o we_o will_v also_o better_o say_v in_o the_o declaration_n of_o those_o word_n this_o be_v in_o deed_n their_o meaning_n to_o the_o saing_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n i_o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o allege_v they_o to_o purpose_n because_o that_o there_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v but_o of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o by_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o three_o reason_n we_o have_v declare_v yea_o as_o christ_n himself_o do_v expound_v it_o in_o the_o text_n and_o so_o all_o the_o old_a doctor_n do_v expound_v it_o and_o chief_o augustine_n who_o say_v believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v so_o that_o seinge_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o turn_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n nor_o that_o of_o his_o bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n can_v be_v prove_v nether_a by_o reason_n nor_o any_o authority_n that_o avayl_v we_o ought_v to_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o feign_a invention_n and_o imagination_n of_o man_n and_o come_v not_o from_o god_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a opinion_n be_v end_v before_o that_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o objection_n and_o ground_n work_v of_o the_o party_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n there_o remanith_n to_o make_v apere_fw-la that_o the_o opinion_n which_o we_o have_v prove_v be_v that_o of_o the_o old_a church_n and_o the_o forename_a doctor_n and_o holy_a man_n and_o because_o i_o shall_v be_v to_o long_o if_o i_o will_v bring_v the_o multitude_n of_o doctor_n it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o therefore_o to_o tell_v augustine_n opinion_n a_o most_o ware_a and_o true_a expounder_n of_o the_o old_a and_o sound_a opinion_n the_o which_o augustine_n hold_v not_o but_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o auntiens_fw-la and_o that_o which_o be_v hold_v in_o his_o time_n and_o of_o his_o predecessor_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o bonifacius_fw-la he_o write_v after_o this_o sort_n 23._o epistle_n 23._o if_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o have_v some_o similitude_n of_o those_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o they_o be_v sacrament_n they_o shall_v be_v in_o no_o wise_a sacrament_n and_o by_o this_o lykelyne_n those_o same_o sacrament_n many_o time_n take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o even_o we_o therefore_o after_o a_o certeyn_a meyn_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v christ_n body_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v christ_n bluode_n and_o so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o baptism_n be_v faith_n and_o be_v call_v faith_n see_v here_o augustine_n how_o he_o understand_v christ_n speech_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o bluode_n show_v the_o
wine_n not_o to_o mean_v that_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v in_o deed_n christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n christ_n blood_n he_o mean_v not_o this_o but_o he_o mean_v that_o therefore_o the_o bread_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v sacrament_n and_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n also_o in_o a_o book_n the_o which_o be_v against_o adimantus_n the_o maniche_n in_o the_o xij_o chapter_n augustine_n say_v 12_o against_o adimantus_n ca._n 12_o the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o sai_o and_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n here_o austen_n plain_o expound_v this_o sainge_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o this_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n 16._o the_o 3._o book_n cap._n 16._o and_o in_o the_o three_o book_n call_v de_fw-la doctrina_fw-la christiana_n in_o the_o xuj_o he_o say_v that_o if_o that_o thing_n which_o christ_n command_v shall_v seem_v strange_a inconvenient_a or_o evell_a do_v than_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o understand_v such_o speech_n accord_v to_o the_o letter_n but_o figuratyvely_a and_o gevinge_v the_o example_n of_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o you_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v not_o his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o he_o say_v that_o such_o speech_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v accord_v to_o the_o letter_n because_o that_o understanding_n it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n it_o be_v a_o disagreable_a and_o a_o inconvenient_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n drink_v and_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v understand_v sound_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o mean_a of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o bluode_n fleshly_a but_o spiritual_o belevinge_v in_o he_o and_o have_v remembrance_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n as_o he_o have_v wrought_v we_o suffer_v and_o die_v for_o us._n and_o this_o be_v the_o eatinge_v and_o drink_v that_o christ_n mean_v of_o and_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v after_o this_o sort_n it_o need_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v real_o in_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n ihon._n the_o thirty_o treatise_n upon_o ihon._n but_o only_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v in_o us._n and_o in_o the_o thirty_o treatise_n upon_o john_n he_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v above_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o heaven_n but_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v the_o truth_n be_v also_o here_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o which_o he_o rise_v must_v needs_o be_v in_o one_o place_n but_o his_o troth_n be_v every_o where_o and_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o troth_n christ_n godhead_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o dardanus_fw-la he_o say_v he_o shall_v come_v for_o to_o judge_v the_o lyvinge_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o self_n same_o form_n that_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n to_o the_o which_o form_n he_o have_v seur_o give_v immortality_n but_o he_o have_v not_o take_v away_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o according_a to_o this_o manner_n of_o form_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o man_n he_o shall_v be_v spread_v abroad_o every_o where_n for_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o affirm_v his_o god_n head_n that_o we_o take_v away_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n for_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o that_o which_o be_v in_o god_n shall_v be_v so_o every_o where_n as_o god_n of_o these_o two_o saing_n of_o austen_n the_o which_o before_o we_o have_v also_o allege_v in_o the_o seven_o reason_n be_v conclude_v that_o austen_n will_v not_o that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v in_o more_o than_o one_o place_n at_o one_o time_n he_o will_v in_o deed_n that_o his_o god_n head_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o but_o not_o his_o manhood_n the_o which_o be_v in_o one_o only_a place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o heaven_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n glosinge_v or_o else_o expound_v certeyn_a sainge_n of_o augustine_n in_o the_o four_o of_o his_o sentence_n the_o ten_o distinction_n where_o he_o bring_v forth_o among_o his_o other_o sainge_n this_o distinction_n in_o the_o 4._o of_o the_o sentence_n the_o ten_o distinction_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v in_o one_o place_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v spread_v abroad_o every_o where_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v in_o one_o placeseable_a in_o man_n form_n but_o his_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o godhead_n be_v every_o where_o sixth_o upon_o john_n the_o sixth_o and_o he_o add_v the_o truth_n also_o of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o very_a body_n be_v on_o every_o aultare_fw-la in_o every_o place_n where_o man_n celebrate_v savinge_v his_o reverence_n this_o be_v not_o to_o set_v forth_o austen_n mind_n but_o it_o be_v to_o geve_v it_o strange_a sense_n that_o he_o neaver_o mean_v and_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o maiminge_n of_o his_o saing_n austen_n by_o that_o word_n troth_n mean_v christ_n godhead_n the_o which_o be_v pour_v abroad_o every_o where_n and_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o body_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o expound_v it_o for_o the_o body_n the_o which_o be_v as_o he_o say_v on_o all_o the_o aultare_n where_o they_o celebrat_fw-mi and_o so_o he_o do_v with_o many_o other_o saing_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o say_a distinction_n and_o in_o other_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o thanks_n geve_v maym_v s._n augustine_n sainge_n and_o call_v those_o heretic_n that_o say_v the_o contrary_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o hold_v not_o that_o christ_n bodily_a presence_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o we_o will_v let_v he_o gloze_v at_o his_o will_n and_o say_v what_o please_v he_o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v maruelled-at_a that_o he_o shall_v so_o light_o and_o without_o reason_n pronounce_v these_o to_o be_v heretic_n that_o speak_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n but_o they_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n honour_n it_o as_o they_o do_v not_o allow_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o faith_n any_o more_o than_o so_o much_o as_o the_o same_o word_n speak_v not_o mind_v to_o stand_v to_o man_n opinion_n except_o they_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n here_o geve_v a_o unjust_a and_o a_o wicked_a judgement_n but_o in_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n 10._o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinite_a ca._n 10._o augustine_n say_v that_o no_o miracle_n happen_v about_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n there_o chance_v no_o miracle_n about_o that_o sacrament_n he_o then_o beleve_v not_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o he_o have_v beleve_v it_o he_o will_v neaver_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o miracle_n but_o he_o will_v have_v say_v that_o there_o happen_v many_o and_o most_o great_a miracle_n as_o before_o in_o the_o five_o reason_n we_o have_v see_v well_o it_o be_v plain_a then_o after_o austin_n mind_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o he_o call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n christ_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v real_o and_o in_o deed_n his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n because_o he_o will_v that_o those_o shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o on_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o may_v if_o we_o will_v allege_v the_o other_o old_a doctor_n as_z ireneus_fw-la tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n ambrose_n jerome_n and_o chrysostome_n all_o the_o which_o be_v of_o the_o self_n same_o opinion_n but_o let_v s._n austen_n suffice_v we_o who_o among_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v the_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o all_o the_o auntientie_n and_o this_o we_o do_v to_o be_v short_a not_o withstand_v if_o any_o will_v see_v these_o doctors_n sainge_n let_v he_o look_v upon_o ireneus_fw-la who_o herd_n policarp_n john_n the_o evangeliste_n disciple_n in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o book_n that_o he_o make_v against_o heresy_n let_v he_o look_v upon_o tertullian_n that_o be_v next_o to_o ireneus_fw-la in_o the_o first_o four_o and_o five_o book_n against_o martian_a the_o heretic_n let_v he_o look_v upon_o origen_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la the_o seven_o and_o nine_o homely_a let_v he_o look_v upon_o ambrose_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o
corinthian_n let_v he_o look_v upon_o chrisostom_n in_o the_o 83._o homely_a upon_o s._n matthew_n let_v he_o look_v upon_o jeron_n upon_o ecclesiastes_n the_o third_o chapter_n all_o who_o sainge_n for_o shortness_n i_o leave_v out_o then_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o old_a church_n mark_n mark_n be_v that_o which_o before_o we_o have_v prove_v and_o we_o must_v here_o mark_v that_o the_o old_a doctor_n intendinge_v in_o their_o manner_n of_o speech_n to_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o when_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v name_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v very_o often_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o chief_o of_o the_o thanks_n gevinge_v theical_a it_o many_o time_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o they_o speak_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o seem_v they_o mean_v to_o affirm_v the_o bodily_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o thing_n that_o they_o neaver_o intend_v the_o which_o thing_n when_o the_o late_a writer_n and_o chief_o the_o school_n man_n have_v not_o take_v heed_n to_o they_o have_v bold_o setfurth_o the_o bodily_a presence_n of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o they_o be_v deceive_v for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o be_v neaver_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o auntientes_n and_o if_o any_o one_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o book_n of_o sacrament_n ascribe_v to_o ambrose_n the_o which_o put_v this_o new_a opinion_n of_o christ_n bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o may_v be_v bold_o answer_v he_o that_o that_o book_n be_v neaver_o ambroses_n because_o that_o neither_o the_o style_n of_o the_o speech_n be_v ambroses_n nor_o the_o sentence_n the_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o many_o his_o sainge_n in_o his_o other_o book_n nor_o let_v no_o man_n marvel_v though_o i_o deny_v those_o book_n to_o be_v ambroses_n for_o many_o book_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o old_a doctoures_fw-la that_o they_o neaver_o see_v much_o less_o make_v as_o that_o book_n of_o the_o true_a and_o false_a repentance_n ascribe_v to_o austen_n the_o which_o teach_v against_o austen_n name_n he_o and_o yet_o certain_a have_v attribute_v it_o to_o he_o certain_a man_n of_o small_a conscience_n have_v do_v this_o other_o that_o they_o may_v better_o sell_v such_o book_n or_o to_o make_v their_o opinion_n be_v beleve_v and_o to_o geve_v they_o authority_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_n or_o else_o for_o some_o other_o respect_v scant_o honest_a it_o be_v no_o small_a fault_n to_o go_v about_o under_o other_o man_n auctority_n without_o their_o consent_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v their_o opinion_n as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a fault_n that_o their_o labour_n and_o book_n shall_v be_v attribute_v to_o other_o and_o i_o say_v more_o also_o again_o that_o although_o all_o the_o old_a doctor_n be_v of_o such_o opinion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v bodily_a present_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v nor_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o if_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o they_o neaver_o do_v nor_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v and_o this_o be_v the_o sign_n that_o as_o many_o as_o eaver_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n can_v neaver_o hitherto_o make_v reason_n that_o may_v avail_v if_o this_o bodily_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v true_a it_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o thing_n much_o belonginge_v to_o faith_n and_o the_o apostolic_a writing_n will_v have_v make_v we_o clear_o and_o sure_a of_o it_o but_o we_o see_v that_o such_o a_o presence_n be_v affirm_v in_o no_o one_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a but_o it_o be_v a_o invention_n of_o man_n the_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v any_o place_n in_o god_n thing_n now_o there_o remain_v to_o answer_v to_o their_o reason_n that_o hold_v this_o bodily_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o make_v as_o in_o the_o begin_v we_o have_v say_v many_o profess_v and_o reason_n but_o none_o avayl_v and_o we_o will_v not_o answer_v but_o to_o three_o or_o four_o which_o have_v a_o certain_a small_a show_n for_o answer_v to_o these_o few_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o answer_v to_o all_o the_o other_o one_o and_o the_o first_o be_v this_o reason_n the_o first_o reason_n that_o be_v to_o say_v chest_n call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n therefore_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n that_o be_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v turn_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o at_o the_o least_o be_v there_o real_o present_a or_o else_o he_o shall_v have_v speak_v a_o lie_n the_o which_o can_v be_v see_v christ_n be_v the_o undeceaveable_a troth_n this_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n that_o they_o can_v make_v the_o which_o not_o withstand_v be_v nothing_o worth_n yea_o it_o come_v of_o a_o ignorance_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o else_o if_o it_o come_v not_o of_o ignorance_n it_o procee_v of_o a_o obstinacye_n and_o self_n willednes_n because_o they_o desire_v to_o defend_v whether_o it_o be_v accord_v to_o the_o common_a sainge_n right_a or_o wrong_n that_o which_o once_o they_o have_v affirm_v because_o they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o have_v err_v i_o answer_v to_o this_o reason_n and_o say_v that_o christ_n say_v the_o troth_n and_o can_v not_o speak_v a_o untruth_n because_o he_o can_v not_o err_v be_v god_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o bread_n be_v christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v his_o blood_n and_o i_o confess_v it_o but_o it_o be_v true_a as_o christ_n mean_v it_o not_o as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n do_v not_o intend_v nor_o go_v not_o a_o bout_n to_o say_v that_o that_o bread_n be_v real_o and_o substantial_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n but_o he_o mean_v to_o say_v that_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o do_v signify_v his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n and_o he_o follow_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o sacrament_n you_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o christ_n always_o do_v honour_n the_o holy_a scripture_n alledginge_v it_o very_o often_o and_o provokinge_v man_n to_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o name_v the_o sacrament_n and_o call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o represent_v by_o they_o he_o also_o desire_v to_o use_v that_o manner_n of_o speech_n call_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o do_v signify_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n because_o it_o do_v signify_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n because_o it_o do_v signify_v his_o blood_n as_o before_o s._n augustine_n have_v say_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signefy_v by_o they_o it_o be_v easelye_o prove_v and_o we_o have_v already_o see_v it_o in_o the_o former_a talk_n the_o circuncision_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o hebrewish_a people_n and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n the_o scripture_n do_v call_v it_o covenaunt_n because_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o god_n covenaunt_n make_v with_o abraham_n and_o his_o of_o springe_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o genesis_fw-la where_o god_n do_v first_o call_v it_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n and_o after_o a_o few_o word_n he_o call_v it_o the_o covenaunt_n the_o covenaunt_n be_v this_o that_o god_n will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o his_o seed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_z his_z of_o springe_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a matter_n that_o the_o circuncision_n be_v not_o real_o this_o covenaunt_n or_o promise_n and_o yet_o god_n do_v call_v it_o covenaunt_v because_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o circuncision_n be_v in_o deed_n god_n covenaunt_v because_o god_n call_v it_o by_o this_o name_n covenaunte_n sewer_o no_o but_o we_o must_v say_v if_o we_o will_v say_v well_o that_o therefore_o god_n call_v it_o so_o because_o the_o same_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n covenaunt_v or_o else_o of_o god_n promise_v and_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v what_o mean_v it_o that_o god_n do_v use_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n can_v not_o he_o use_v
the_o proper_a manner_n of_o speech_n and_o not_o the_o improper_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n often_o time_n use_v with_o we_o the_o custom_n of_o man_n because_o we_o be_v man_n and_o he_o agree_v to_o our_o manner_n of_o speech_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o custom_n be_v among_o man_n that_o they_o call_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n by_o the_o self_n same_o name_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n signify_v as_o for_o example_n if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o shall_v make_v a_o covenaunt_n or_o a_o agreement_n with_o any_o man_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o agreement_n and_o covenaunt_n be_v make_v we_o cause_v to_o be_v make_v a_o instrument_n or_o a_o write_n of_o such_o agreement_n and_o we_o call_v it_o covenaunt_v or_o else_o agreement_n not_o that_o that_o instrument_n be_v real_o such_o agreement_n for_o the_o covenaunt_n and_o agreement_n go_v before_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o such_o covenaunt_n and_o agreement_n so_o we_o call_v the_o write_n of_o a_o sale_n or_o of_o a_o purchase_n a_o sale_n or_o purchase_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o sale_n or_o purchase_n and_o we_o do_v call_v the_o writing_n or_o the_o instrument_n of_o such_o thing_n testament_n or_o legacy_n or_o gift_n because_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o confirmation_n of_o these_o thing_n let_v we_o geve_v a_o other_o example_n which_o also_o be_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o exodus_fw-la and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v call_v passover_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o apostel_n do_v so_o call_v it_o christ_n say_v in_o saynet_n luke_o i_o have_v earnest_o desire_v to_o eat_v this_o passover_n before_o i_o suffer_v here_o christ_n call_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n passover_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o christ_n where_o will_v thou_o that_o we_o prepare_v for_o the_o to_o eat_v the_o passover_n and_o for_o all_o that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v not_o real_o the_o passover_n because_o the_o passover_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o same_o exodus_fw-la be_v that_o passage_n as_o it_o be_v also_o say_v before_o in_o the_o nine_o reason_n the_o which_o the_o angel_n make_v when_o he_o strike_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o egypt_n and_o pass_v by_o the_o house_n of_o the_o hebrew_v now_o that_o passage_n be_v proper_o the_o passover_n but_o because_o the_o lamb_n be_v ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v kill_v and_o after_o eat_v with_o many_o ceremony_n in_o sign_n and_o remembrance_n of_o that_o thing_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o passover_v behold_v how_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n represent_v and_o signify_v why_o shall_v we_o marvel_v then_o that_o christ_n do_v call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n because_o they_o shall_v be_v sign_n and_o a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o marvel_v yea_o it_o be_v our_o great_a rudeness_n and_o dulness_n that_o we_o see_v not_o this_o thing_n and_o why_o he_o have_v do_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v why_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n every_o man_n say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o thanks_n gevinge_v do_v come_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o seinge_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostel_n call_v the_o same_o such_o lamb_n passover_fw-mi yea_o christ_n himself_o in_o the_o same_o supper_n when_o he_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n call_v that_o lamb_n passover_v not_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n and_o a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o passover_n why_o shall_v not_o the_o bread_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v sign_n and_o a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n even_o as_o the_o lamb_n be_v call_v passover_n because_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o remembrance_n of_o the_o passover_n and_o that_o rock_v out_o of_o which_o come_v forth_o the_o water_n in_o the_o desert_n paul_n call_v it_o christ_n not_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o that_o it_o do_v signify_v christ_n nor_o there_o be_v neaver_o any_o man_n that_o by_o such_o a_o sainge_n will_v think_v that_o paul_n mean_v to_o affirm_v that_o that_o stone_n be_v real_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o mean_v only_o to_o say_v that_o it_o do_v signify_v christ_n so_o likewise_o let_v we_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n that_o they_o be_v call_v body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v sign_n and_o a_o remembrance_n of_o such_o thing_n we_o have_v be_v long_o in_o answer_v to_o this_o reason_n because_o in_o deed_n the_o whole_a consist_v in_o this_o declaration_n that_o we_o have_v make_v the_o second_o reason_n be_v this_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n s._n paul_n will_v not_o have_v say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v take_v it_o unworthelye_o nor_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o other_o thing_n but_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o be_v none_o other_o thing_n there_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v to_o we_o such_o condemnation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n no_o condemnation_n to_o eat_v other_o come_fw-mi bread_n and_o to_o drink_v other_o wine_n to_o this_o be_v answer_v that_o therefore_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o be_v giltye_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o which_o do_v take_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o sacrament_n unworthelye_o not_o for_o because_o that_o either_o the_o body_n or_o the_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o they_o be_v therefore_o giltye_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o because_o they_o despise_v christ_n death_n they_o despise_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o goinge_v with_o that_o faith_n and_o with_o that_o reverence_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o take_v those_o holy_a sign_n institute_v by_o christ_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n give_v to_o death_n for_o our_o ransom_n in_o old_a time_n they_o that_o do_v despise_v or_o dishonour_v the_o name_n or_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n they_o be_v gyltie_n of_o treason_n against_o the_o state_n of_o rome_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v wrong_n to_o caesar_n image_n or_o else_o have_v deface_v any_o of_o caesar_n writing_n this_o be_v as_o if_o they_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o the_o princess_n person_n he_o that_o will_v dishonour_v the_o arm_n or_o the_o badge_n of_o any_o great_a state_n that_o prince_n will_v have_v esteem_v such_o dishonour_n and_o disworship_n to_o be_v commit_v against_o his_o oune_n person_n for_o when_o his_o badge_n or_o else_o his_o arm_n be_v dyspyse_v he_o himself_o be_v dispyse_v so_o seinge_v that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o chief_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n have_v institute_v the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n and_o shall_v represent_v so_o great_a a_o mystery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o have_v give_v his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n and_o die_v for_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o sin_n and_o from_o everlasting_a death_n and_o to_o geve_v we_o everlasting_a life_n sewer_o they_o that_o will_v take_v these_o holy_a sign_n without_o true_a repentance_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o without_o true_a faith_n and_o without_o consideration_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n and_o benefit_n they_o make_v no_o count_v neither_o of_o christ_n body_n nor_o his_o blood_n nor_o of_o his_o death_n no_o nor_o of_o christ_n himself_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o that_o they_o who_o go_v to_o take_v such_o a_o sacrament_n unworthelye_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v condemnation_n because_o when_o they_o despise_v the_o sign_n of_o so_o great_a thing_n they_o do_v consequent_o despise_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o he_o also_o that_o do_v institute_v such_o sign_n it_o be_v not_o prove_v by_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v enclose_v in_o this_o sacrament_n but_o the_o contrary_n reason_n the_o three_o reason_n the_o three_o reason_n the_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o show_n be_v this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o here_o in_o this_o sacrament_n there_o shall_v not_o be_v wrought_v any_o such_o great_a miracle_n as_o man_n see_v sometime_o it_o be_v seen_v that_o the_o host_n have_v cast_v out_o blood_n and_o such_o blood_n be_v keep_v in_o many_o place_n it_o
be_v god_n the_o maker_n of_o nature_n can_v bring_v it_o to_o pass_v in_o his_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o first_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n and_o after_o then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a host_n and_o in_o the_o cup_n and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o dyvers_a place_n if_o he_o can_v do_v those_o thing_n and_o will_v do_v they_o as_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n sh●…winge_v the_o wine_n than_o they_o be_v do_v because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n quaecunque_fw-la voluit_fw-la fecit_fw-la dominus_fw-la all_o thing_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v do_v he_o do_v i_o answer_v first_o to_o the_o reason_n itself_o and_o after_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o similitude_n to_o the_o reason_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o god_n can_v do_v it_o therefore_o he_o have_v do_v it_o i_o say_v that_o it_o awayl_v not_o and_o it_o be_v already_o answer_v before_o in_o our_o seven_o reason_n that_o god_n do_v not_o all_o that_o he_o can_v do_v as_o we_o geve_v the_o example_n of_o the_o twelve_o thousand_o legion_n of_o angel_n the_o which_o god_n if_o he_o will_v can_v have_v send_v to_o help_n christ_n and_o yet_o he_o send_v they_o not_o god_n can_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o all_o may_v walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n without_o ship_n as_o some_o time_n christ_n do_v and_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o wysdom_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v it_o not_o our_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o god_n can_v do_v it_o or_o no_o but_o it_o be_v whether_o god_n have_v do_v it_o or_o no._n they_o saiye_v and_o we_o say_v not_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o and_o that_o he_o do_v it_o a_o fresh_a the_o which_o they_o shall_v neaver_o do_v nor_o can_v neaver_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v by_o god_n word_n this_o be_v a_o sure_a rule_n concern_v that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o say_v that_o god_n have_v desire_v to_o do_v it_o this_o be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o most_o false_a what_o reason_n be_v this_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n therefore_o he_o will_v that_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o say_v this_o reason_n do_v not_o deserve_v any_o answer_n for_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n mean_v not_o to_o say_v any_o other_o but_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o mean_v not_o to_o say_v that_o which_o they_o affirm_v as_o before_o we_o have_v so_o often_o declare_v the_o example_n or_o similitude_n that_o they_o bring_v forth_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o they_o be_v rather_o dissimilitude_n then_o otherwise_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n rod_n turn_v into_o the_o serpent_n and_o after_o the_o serpent_n turn_v into_o the_o rod_n and_o of_o the_o water_n turn_v into_o blood_n it_o be_v not_o like_a because_o the_o serpent_n transubstantiation_n note_v further_o that_o in_o turn_v of_o moses_n rod_n of_o the_o water_n into_o blood_n and_o such_o other_o miracle_n the_o sense_n do_v witness_v the_o change_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o hold_v not_o in_o the_o transubstantiation_n into_o the_o which_o the_o rod_n be_v turn_v be_v not_o before_o but_o be_v new_o make_v likewise_o that_o blood_n into_o the_o which_o the_o water_n be_v turn_v be_v new_o make_v and_o be_v not_o before_o but_o christ_n body_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v and_o be_v before_o the_o bread_n they_o put_v certain_a turninge_n against_o nature_n not_o marvellous_a but_o rather_o monstrous_a and_o imaginative_a let_v they_o geve_v i_o but_o one_o example_n in_o the_o hole_n scripture_n that_o god_n eaver_n turn_v one_o thing_n into_o another_o that_o be_v before_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o how_o dare_v they_o then_o be_v so_o bold_a to_o affirm_v such_o a_o thing_n yea_o that_o which_o be_v more_o to_o go_v about_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v nether_a prove_v it_o by_o god_n word_n nor_o bring_v forth_o any_o example_n that_o eaver_n any_o like_a thing_n be_v do_v the_o example_n of_o the_o heaven_n that_o it_o be_v in_o our_o eye_n which_o be_v little_a be_v nothing_o worth_a because_o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o real_o in_o our_o eye_n but_o there_o be_v only_o the_o image_n or_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o heaven_n the_o which_o similitude_n be_v little_a as_o the_o eye_n nor_o it_o be_v not_o unconuenient_a that_o the_o similitude_n or_o the_o image_n of_o a_o great_a thing_n shall_v be_v little_a as_o the_o image_n of_o cesar_n be_v in_o the_o coin_n that_o be_v show_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o pharisee_n the_o image_n of_o cesar_n be_v in_o that_o coin_n the_o which_o be_v much_o less_o than_o cesar_n himself_o and_o nevertheless_o it_o do_v represent_v cesar_n who_o be_v great_a and_o much_o great_a than_o that_o image_n we_o will_v say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o image_n of_o the_o man_n in_o the_o glass_n the_o which_o although_o that_o it_o be_v much_o less_o than_o the_o man_n yet_o it_o do_v represent_v the_o man_n this_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n that_o the_o image_n of_o agreat_a thing_n shall_v be_v little_a but_o it_o shall_v be_v agreat_a matter_n that_o agreat_a body_n shall_v be_v contain_v in_o one_o much_o less_o as_o they_o say_v of_o christ_n that_o great_a and_o thick_a as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o as_o present_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o shall_v be_v whole_a contain_v in_o a_o little_a cake_n they_o that_o geve_v these_o example_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v seen_v in_o glass_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o agreat_a body_n be_v contain_v in_o a_o little_a as_o they_o say_v of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o host_n but_o they_o prove_v only_o the_o image_n or_o similitude_n of_o agreat_a thing_n may_v be_v whole_a in_o a_o little_a thing_n the_o which_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o if_o the_o similitude_n or_o image_n of_o agreat_a thing_n be_v in_o a_o little_a thing_n this_o be_v because_o that_o that_o image_n itself_o also_o be_v little_a and_o no_o great_a than_o that_o body_n where_o in_o it_o aper_v yea_o it_o be_v less_o so_o that_o these_o example_n be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o the_o other_o similitude_n i_o say_v also_o that_o they_o avayle_n not_o that_o of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n this_o be_v because_o the_o soul_n see_v that_o it_o geve_v life_n to_o all_o the_o body_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a must_v needs_o be_v in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o seinge_n it_o geve_v life_n not_o only_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n but_o to_o every_o part_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o the_o part_n because_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o part_n that_o part_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o live_v and_o because_o that_o the_o soul_n wheresoeaver_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v whole_a there_o be_v undyvidable_a and_o not_o have_v part_n because_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n there_o before_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o soul_n be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o christ_n body_n not_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o have_v many_o part_n be_v long_o broad_a and_o think_v can_v be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v and_o as_o it_o be_v repugnaunte_a to_o a_o body_n to_o be_v a_o spirit_n so_o be_v it_o repugnant_a to_o it_o to_o be_v undevydhable_a in_o a_o place_n to_o the_o other_o similitude_n of_o our_o face_n the_o which_o be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o glass_n after_o this_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o when_o the_o glass_n be_v break_v the_o image_n of_o the_o face_n be_v in_o every_o piece_n of_o the_o glass_n i_o say_v they_o be_v deceive_v nor_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o one_o image_n be_v in_o all_o those_o piece_n of_o the_o glass_n when_o it_o be_v
not_o there_o bodily_a present_n of_o any_o manner_n of_o sort_n but_o as_o man_n he_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n from_o whence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a reason_n the_o first_o reason_n as_o tharticle_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v sai_fw-mi and_o this_o opinion_n we_o have_v prove_v with_o many_o reason_n first_o by_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v none_o other_o but_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n and_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a for_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v real_o as_o man_n in_o the_o same_o and_o much_o less_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v any_o substantial_a turn_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n it_o suffice_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v there_o as_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n reason_n the_o 2._o reason_n then_o next_o seinge_v that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v only_o for_o remembrance_n it_o suffice_v that_o it_o do_v bring_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n give_fw-ge for_fw-mi our_o raunsominge_v and_o it_o need_v not_o to_o put_v there_o the_o bodily_a presence_n of_o the_o one_o or_o of_o other_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o the_o right_n of_o no_o sacrament_n either_o in_o general_a or_o particular_a require_v this_o etc._n etc._n the_o three_o see_v the_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o profitable_a and_o not_o the_o bodily_a reason_n the_o 3._o reason_n if_o christ_n be_v as_o man_n in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o shall_v help_v nothing_o the_o turnekindinge_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n re_fw-la the._n 4._o re_fw-la can_v stand_v together_o with_o certain_a plain_n and_o many_o fest_n effect_n which_o be_v see_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o norysh_n because_o the_o sacrament_n do_v nourish_v as_o other_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v and_o with_o thingender_v of_o certain_a beast_n as_o maggot_n or_o such_o like_a beast_n the_o which_o thing_n can_v be_v make_v admit_v this_o turnkynd_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o to_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o five_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v god_n with_o out_o any_o manner_n of_o need_n shall_v work_v some_o reason_n the_o five_o reason_n yea_o many_o most_o stonishfull_a miracle_n such_o as_o be_v never_o the_o great_a the_o syxt_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v necessary_a that_o christ_n on_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n reason_n the_o syxt_v reason_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v step_n out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n see_v he_o be_v here_o much_o near_o on_o earth_n then_o in_o heaven_n the_o seven_o reason_n the_o seven_o reason_n the_o opinion_n of_o christ_n bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n dymynish_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n and_o make_v it_o fantastical_a yea_o nothinge_v it_o the_o eight_o reason_n the_o eight_o reason_n the_o surs●●m_fw-la corda_fw-la which_o be_v song_n in_o the_o mass_n geve_v to_o understand_v that_o in_o old_a time_n christ_n bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o beleve_v the_o nine_o reason_n the_o nine_o reason_n if_o forbecause_n christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v the_o bread_n and_o thit_n be_v my_o blood_n show_v the_o wine_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o else_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v there_o present_a see_v there_o be_v many_o other_o speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n like_v unto_o this_o it_o shall_v be_v behoove_v full_a that_o the_o like_a shall_v be_v do_v in_o all_o those_o from_o whence_o will_v follow_v many_o inconvenience_n reason_n the_o ten_o reason_n the_o ten_o see_v that_o christ_n flesh_n can_v not_o be_v eat_v nor_o his_o blood_n droken_v but_o after_o two_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n and_o sacramental_o and_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o the_o bodily_a presence_n 10._o 1._o chor._n 10._o as_o the_o ancient_n do_v eat_v and_o drink_v he_o before_o that_o he_o take_v man_n flesh_n as_o paul_v say_v write_v to_o the_o chorynthyes_n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o necessity_n to_o affirm_v that_o bodily_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n then_o further_o all_o though_o that_o we_o shall_v bring_v forth_o no_o reason_n for_o we_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o we_o to_o prove_v our_o negative_a but_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o that_o affirm_v such_o a_o be_v there_o to_o prove_v their_o affirmative_a the_o which_o they_o do_v never_o nor_o can_v not_o do_v by_o any_o sa_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v after_o also_o make_v appear_v that_o our_o opinion_n be_v of_o shall_z church_n and_o chief_o augustine_n and_o we_o have_v answer_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n make_v it_o apparent_a that_o they_o be_v uneffectual_a unpithye_a and_o weak_a to_o prove_v their_o purpose_n declare_v the_o manner_n of_o speech_n that_o the_o scripture_n use_v when_o it_o treat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o end_n we_o have_v add_v from_o when_o the_o false_a imagination_n of_o that_o manner_n error_n be_v procee_v and_o we_o have_v be_v long_o in_o treat_v of_o this_o article_n and_o we_o have_v make_v many_o moo_o word_n than_o we_o think_v and_o have_v repeat_v the_o self_n thing_n often_o and_o have_v something_o excede_v the_o measure_n of_o a_o sermon_n for_o the_o which_o thing_n the_o reader_n shall_v have_v i_o excuse_v we_o have_v consider_v first_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v most_o weighty_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v well_o express_v the_o which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v with_o few_o word_n then_o further_o also_o the_o error_n be_v so_o confirm_v and_o after_o such_o sort_n root_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v pluck_v up_o nor_o root_v out_o without_o as_o it_o be_v common_o say_v much_o dig_v and_o delve_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o be_v long_o and_o paraventure_fw-fr something_o tedious_a to_o the_o learned_a nevertheless_o this_o labour_n be_v chief_o take_v for_o the_o unlerned_a well_o it_o suffice_v that_o this_o our_o purpose_n be_v upright_o and_o that_o we_o take_v not_o upon_o we_o this_o entreprise_n for_o no_o neither_o end_n but_o for_o god_n honour_n and_o for_o the_o love_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o last_o of_o all_o to_o do_v good_a and_o help_n to_o the_o simple_a christian_n who_o have_v be_v so_o long_a time_n drown_v in_o so_o great_a a_o error_n and_o deceive_v by_o the_o subtle_a and_o wicked_a antichrist_n who_o let_v we_o all_o prey_n unto_o god_n with_o a_o good_a hart_n and_o continual_o that_o he_o will_v so_o root_v out_o and_o plucck_v up_o or_o to_o speak_v better_a destroy_v save_v always_o not_o withstand_v the_o man_n to_o who_o we_o desire_v all_o good_a i_o sai_fw-mi even_o destroy_v as_o the_o little_a stone_n do_v that_o great_a image_n which_o nabuchodonosor_n see_v in_o his_o dream_n that_o be_v to_o sai_o that_o he_o will_v make_v he_o utter_o vanysh_v away_o and_o be_v come_v nothing_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o god_n final_a and_o perfect_a kingdom_n mai_fw-gr come_v through_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n our_o lord_n and_o redeemer_n to_o who_o be_v honour_n and_o glory_n world_n without_o end_n amen_o finis_fw-la fault_n escape_v in_o the_o print_n and_o correct_v after_o this_o sort_n take_v lea_n for_o the_o leaf_n a_o for_o the_o first_o side_n b_o for_o the_o second_o side_n ly._n for_o the_o line_n r_n for_o read_v lea._n 2._o b._n lie_v 8._o headolugne_v r_o headlongne_n lea._n 4._o a._n lie_v 21_o opinious_a r._n opinion_n lea_n 6._o b._n lie_v 1._o ehyrch_n r._n church_n lea_n 9_o b._n lie_v 18._o strst_n first_o lea._n 12_o b_o lie_v 1_o evy_n r_o any_o lea_n 11_o b._n lie_v 20_o hollis_n r._n holies_n lee_n 21_o ah_o lie_v 2._o upistle_n r_o epistle_n 6._o lie_v 13_o soruant_n r_o servant_n lea_n 25_o b_o lie_v 13_o and_o the_o blood_n r_o and_o the_o win_v the_o blood_n lea_n 35_o b._n lie_v 20_o glorios_fw-la r._n gloriousnes_n lee_n 36_o a_o lie_n 11._o tedyosnes_n r._n tediousness_n lea_n 40_o b._n lie_v 8._o ho_o r_o hoc_fw-la lea_n 42_o a._n lie_v 26._o poinctt_n r_o point_n b._n lie_v 20._o consecrationi_fw-la r._n consecration_n lea_n 49_o a._n lie_v 24_o any_o r_o any_o lea_n 54_o b._n lie_v 16._o wat._n r._n be_v lea_n 60._o a._n lie_v 8_o maid_n r._n make_v and_o for_o consecravyon_n r._n consecration_n lea_n 65_o ah_o lie_v 16._o no_o r._n not_o lie_v 25._o superstitos_fw-la r._n superstitious_a lea._n 67._o a_o lie_n 18._o tho_o r._n to_o lea_n 68_o a_o li._n 5._o thert_n r._n there_o l._n 17._o from_o r_o from_fw-la lea_n 74._o a._n lie_v 16_o bylever_n r_o believer_n and_o all_o way_n after_o lea_n 72_o a._n lie_v 10_o he_o fore_o r._n before_o lea_n 77_o ah_o li._n 19_o candache_n r_o candace_n lea_n 81._o b._n lie_v 26._o crimin_n crimine_fw-la lea_n 88_o a._n lie_v 21_o offy_v r_o offer_v lea_n 94_o b_o lie_v 12._o passhion_n r_o passion_n lea_n 111._o b_o 21._o except_v r_o except_o lea_n 115_o ah_o li_n 1_o song_n r_o soung_a lie_v 2._o ring_v r_o roung_a lea_n ah_o li._n 2._o misfortutune_n r._n misfortune_n lea_n 118_o b_o lie_v 11._o apostos_fw-la r._n apostle_n lea._n 120._o lie_n r._n super_fw-la r._n supper_n lea_n 121._o b._n lie_v 22_o now_o he_o he_o r_o now._n he_o lea_n 122_o ah_o lie_v 19_o paraventur_fw-la r._n peraventure_fw-fr le_fw-fr 124._o a_o li._n 12._o thes_n r._n those_o lea_n 125_o b_o lie_v 13._o the_o chief_a great_a mist_n ry_o r_o the_o chief_a mystery_n lea_n 126._o a._n li._n 15._o the_o law_n i_o speak_v r_o the_o law_n nor_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o that_o be_v against_o god_n law_n but_o god_n law_n i_o speak_v lea_n 126._o b._n lie_v 7._o have_v hevy_a sin_n then_o r_o have_v hevior_n sin_n than_o man_n laughter_n then_o lea_n 127_o ah_o li._n 5._o idolatros_fw-la r_o idolatrous_a li._n 9_o thcik_n r_o thick_a li_n 13._o in_o they_o r_o in_o it_o lee_n 127_o b_o lie_v 8_o benefice_n r_o benefit_n lea_n 128._o a._n lie_v 18_o ame_fw-fr r._n same_o lea._n 131._o a._n li._n 19_o saint_n or_o saint_n r_o saint_n or_o sainctess_n lie_v 20_o s._n loreto_o r_o loreto_o b_o lie_v 6_o say_v here_o will●●_n say_v here_o be_v these_o idolatreis_n how_o can_v they_o de_fw-fr ●…ey_v it_o will_n lea._n 131._o b._n lie_v 9_o hiperdulia_n r_o hyperdulia_fw-la lea_n 137_o ah_o li._n 5._o wis_v r._n with_o lea_n 138._o a._n li._n 13_o follow_v do_v asleep_o neither_o r_o follow_v one_o a_o other_o lee_n 156_o ah_o li._n 22._o and_o and._n r._n and._n lea_n 174._o b._n lie_v 19_o mass_n r_o mass_n lea_n 177._o a._n li._n 7._o cover_v with_o r._n cover_v wear_v cover_v with_o b._n lie_v 1._o crafft_v r._n craft_n and_o likewise_o in_o other_o place_n lea_n 178_o a._n li._n 14_o eschew_v r._n issue_n and_o general_o read_v for_o off_o of_z for_o those_o those_o for_o thes_n these_o for_o coverid_fw-la cover_v and_o for_o such_o other_o in_o with_fw-mi read_v commen_o ve_v and_o often_o for_o ans_fw-fr or_o ens_fw-la read_v ance_n or_o ence_o as_o for_o importans_fw-la read_v importance_n and_o for_o reverens_fw-la reverence_n and_o often_o for_o or_o read_v our_o as_o for_o saviour_n read_v saviour_n and_o for_o bylever_n always_o believer_n and_o commen_o for_o os_fw-la read_v ous_a or_o ose_a as_o the_o word_n geve_v as_o for_o gratio_n read_v gracious_a and_o for_o purpose_n read_v purpose_n lea._n 180._o a._n l._n 8_o yoie_n r._n joy_n 182._o b._n lie_v 15_o true_a fault_n in_o the_o sermom_n read_v true_a and_o 185._o b._n li._n 9_o who_o ever_o read_v whosoever_o 186._o a._n li._n 15._o remembrans_fw-la read_v remembrance_n and_o after_o 187._o a._n lie_v 18._o substan_n read_v substance_n 188._o b._n li._n 5._o body_n lithere_o read_v bodily_a there_o 192._o a._n li._n 7._o dew_n read_v due_n 193._o a._n ill_a 3._o everlasting_a read_v everlasting_a 193._o b._n li._n 17._o be_v belew_v read_v beleve_v 194._o b._n li._n 15._o scene_n read_v see_v 196._o b._n l._n 14_o blood_n r._n blood_n 199._o b._n l._n 3._o satisf_v r_o satisfy_v 205._o a._n l._n 25._o when_o shall_v r._n when_o they_o shall_v 222._o b._n l._n 1._o turn_v read_v turn_v and_o 228._o a._n li._n ●…_n be_v r._n bring_v 225._o b._n li._n 5._o choose_fw-mi r._n those_o finis_fw-la